Selected quad for the lemma: life_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
life_n believe_v live_v see_v 4,131 5 3.4899 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A52081 The first book, a clear and brief explanation upon the chief points of the New Testament ... by M. Marsin. Marsin, M. 1698 (1698) Wing M813A; ESTC R28810 342,581 643

There are 39 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

have_v slight_v his_o mercy_n therefore_o this_o be_v no_o encouragement_n to_o we_o that_o live_v under_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o defer_v repentance_n for_o the_o day_n of_o grace_n and_o the_o day_n of_o life_n have_v not_o one_o and_o the_o same_o date_n for_o if_o we_o will_v go_v on_o froward_o in_o the_o way_n of_o our_o own_o heart_n god_n will_v leave_v we_o to_o blindness_n of_o mind_n and_o hardness_n of_o heart_n now_o god_n say_v that_o david_n be_v a_o man_n after_o his_o own_o heart_n and_o why_o because_o his_o heart_n immediate_o answer_v the_o call_n of_o god_n by_o his_o word_n or_o messenger_n as_o the_o psalmist_n say_v 27.8_o psal_n 27.8_o when_o thou_o say_v seek_v you_o my_o face_n my_o heart_n answer_v unto_o thou_o thy_o face_n lord_n will_v i_o seek_v this_o be_v the_o voice_n which_o god_n require_v of_o we_o the_o which_o he_o find_v not_o in_o israel_n as_o say_v st._n paul_n 10.21_o rom._n 10.21_o to_o israel_n he_o say_v all_o the_o day_n long_o i_o have_v stretch_v forth_o my_o hand_n unto_o a_o disobedient_a and_o gainsay_v people_n and_o also_o in_o proverb_n 1.24,26_o prov._n 1.24,26_o because_o i_o have_v call_v and_o you_o refuse_v i_o have_v stretch_v out_o my_o hand_n and_o no_o man_n regard_v i_o also_o will_v laugh_v at_o your_o calamity_n i_o will_v mock_v when_o your_o fear_n come_v by_o this_o we_o may_v plain_o see_v god_n complain_v of_o they_o because_o they_o be_v want_v to_o themselves_o in_o not_o improve_n the_o season_n of_o grace_n which_o he_o have_v put_v into_o their_o hand_n therefore_o god_n say_v in_o the_o 32._o v._o 1.32,33_o prov._n 1.32,33_o the_o turn_v away_o of_o the_o simple_a shall_v slay_v they_o and_o the_o prosperity_n of_o fool_n shall_v destroy_v they_o but_o whosoever_o shall_v hearken_v unto_o i_o shall_v dwell_v safe_o and_o be_v quiet_a from_o fear_n of_o evil_a what_o be_v here_o speak_v be_v to_o the_o foolish_a and_o wise_a christian_n and_o of_o the_o near_a approach_a time_n to_o come_v now_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n st._n paul_n send_v present_o after_o their_o conversion_n when_o as_o daily_o there_o be_v new_a convert_v bring_v over_o to_o the_o church_n for_o their_o comfort_n to_o let_v they_o understand_v that_o if_o they_o shall_v immediate_o after_o their_o conversion_n be_v take_v away_o by_o a_o natural_a death_n or_o a_o violent_a one_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o their_o faith_n that_o they_o shall_v no_o way_n be_v startle_v or_o dismay_v because_o they_o have_v not_o time_n after_o their_o conversion_n to_o do_v any_o good_a action_n even_o so_o much_o time_n as_o to_o be_v baptize_v but_o only_o believe_v as_o the_o thief_n do_v and_o thereupon_o call_v upon_o the_o lord_n for_o mercy_n and_o so_o depart_v this_o life_n yet_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v upon_o which_o occasion_n they_o be_v baptize_v for_o the_o dead_a as_o the_o ancient_n say_v and_o of_o which_o st._n paul_n speak_v 15.29_o 1_o cor._n 15.29_o what_o shall_v they_o do_v which_o be_v baptize_v for_o the_o dead_a if_o the_o dead_a rise_v not_o at_o all_o why_o be_v they_o then_o baptize_v for_o the_o dead_a now_o that_o they_o that_o call_v upon_o god_n so_o as_o to_o have_v salvation_n his_o follow_a word_n make_v out_o where_o the_o apostle_n say_v 10.14_o rom._n 10.14_o how_o then_o shall_v they_o call_v on_o he_o in_o who_o they_o have_v not_o believe_v by_o which_o we_o see_v their_o call_n be_v insignificant_a without_o believe_v and_o if_o they_o save_o believe_v it_o must_v be_v according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o require_v of_o we_o repentance_n from_o dead_a work_n and_o love_n to_o and_o faith_n in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o if_o we_o live_v amendment_n of_o life_n for_o he_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n must_v become_v a_o new_a creature_n and_o walk_v as_o he_o himself_o walk_v 2.6_o 1_o joh._n 2.6_o and_o as_o st._n paul_n to_o the_o roman_n say_v 8.1,8_o rom._n 8.1,8_o there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n who_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n 6._o v._n for_o to_o be_v carnal_o mind_v be_v death_n but_o to_o be_v spiritual_o mind_v be_v life_n and_o peace_n by_o which_o we_o may_v plain_o see_v st._n paul_n meaning_n be_v not_o that_o they_o may_v remain_v in_o their_o own_o natural_a state_n and_o so_o call_v upon_o god_n and_o be_v save_v but_o that_o his_o meaning_n be_v as_o i_o before_o show_v you_o for_o what_o be_v set_v down_o here_o and_o what_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o 10._o ch._n be_v write_v at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o time_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o epistle_n and_o the_o jew_n wise_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o must_v look_v to_o the_o word_n which_o go_v before_o and_o the_o word_n that_o follow_v after_o if_o we_o intend_v to_o come_v to_o a_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n now_o god_n by_o the_o prophet_n jeremiah_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o miscarriage_n of_o judah_n and_o how_o she_o do_v but_o feign_o call_v upon_o he_o as_o in_o the_o 10._o v._o 3.10_o jer._n 3.10_o and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o her_o treacherous_a sister_n judah_n have_v not_o turn_v unto_o i_o with_o her_o whole_a heart_n but_o feign_o say_v the_o lord_n and_o the_o apostle_n say_v 6.16,17,18_o rom._n 6.16,17,18_o know_v you_o not_o that_o to_o who_o you_o yield_v yourselves_o servant_n to_o obey_v his_o servant_n you_o be_v to_o who_o you_o obey_v whether_o of_o sin_n unto_o death_n or_o obedience_n unto_o righteousness_n but_o god_n be_v thank_v that_o you_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o sin_n but_o you_o have_v obey_v from_o the_o heart_n that_o form_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v deliver_v you_o be_v then_o make_v free_a from_o sin_n you_o become_v the_o servant_n of_o righteousness_n the_o which_o be_v a_o evident_a token_n that_o we_o have_v no_o share_n in_o christ_n righteousness_n if_o we_o ourselves_o walk_v not_o in_o the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n and_o also_o we_o sin_v our_o sin_n over_o again_o if_o we_o do_v but_o delightful_o think_v on_o they_o and_o the_o apostle_n relate_v to_o titus_n what_o they_o be_v before_o they_o be_v convert_v 3.3,4,5,6,7,8_o titus_n 3.3,4,5,6,7,8_o for_o we_o ourselves_o also_o be_v sometime_o foolish_a disobedient_a deceive_v serve_v divers_a lust_n and_o pleasure_n live_v in_o malice_n and_o envy_n hateful_a and_o hate_v one_o another_o but_o after_o that_o the_o kindness_n and_o love_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n towards_o man_n appear_v not_o by_o work_n of_o righteousness_n which_o we_o have_v do_v but_o according_a to_o his_o mercy_n he_o save_v we_o by_o the_o wash_n of_o regeneration_n and_o renew_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o he_o shed_v on_o we_o abundant_o through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n that_o be_v justify_v by_o his_o grace_n shall_v be_v make_v heir_n according_a to_o the_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n this_o be_v a_o faithful_a say_n and_o these_o thing_n i_o will_v that_o you_o affirm_v constant_o that_o they_o which_o have_v believe_v in_o god_n may_v be_v careful_a to_o maintain_v good_a work_n the_o apostle_n have_v here_o set_v down_o what_o they_o be_v before_o the_o kindness_n and_o love_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n towards_o man_n appear_v and_o whereas_o he_o say_v not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o righteousness_n which_o they_o have_v do_v but_o according_a to_o his_o mercy_n he_o save_v they_o by_o the_o wash_n of_o regeneration_n and_o the_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n here_o we_o see_v be_v a_o inward_a change_n wrought_v in_o they_o from_o whence_o do_v arise_v their_o hope_n of_o salvation_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o the_o spirit_n be_v shed_v on_o they_o abundant_o it_o be_v for_o the_o establish_n the_o gospel_n and_o as_o to_o what_o he_o say_v as_o to_o their_o be_v justify_v by_o his_o grace_n they_o shall_v be_v make_v heir_n according_a to_o the_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n that_o be_v as_o i_o before_o tell_v you_o upon_o their_o first_o conversion_n and_o resign_v themselves_o up_o to_o christ_n to_o be_v whole_o guide_v and_o govern_v by_o he_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o his_o word_n than_o it_o be_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n be_v impute_v to_o they_o whereby_o they_o become_v justify_v in_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v i_o will_v that_o they_o affirm_v constant_o that_o they_o that_o have_v believe_v in_o god_n may_v be_v careful_a to_o maintain_v good_a work_n the_o which_o he_o say_v to_o let_v they_o understand_v that_o if_o they_o do_v not_o persevere_v in_o a_o holy_a life_n they_o may_v be_v cast_v off_o according_a to_o what_o the_o lord_n say_v 15.2.6,8,9,10,14_o joh._n 15.2.6,8,9,10,14_o every_o
branch_n in_o i_o that_o bear_v not_o fruit_n he_o take_v away_o and_o every_o branch_n that_o bear_v fruit_n he_o purge_v it_o that_o it_o may_v bring_v forth_o more_o fruit_n if_o a_o man_n abide_v not_o in_o i_o he_o be_v cast_v forth_o as_o a_o branch_n and_o be_v wither_v and_o man_n gather_v they_o and_o cast_v they_o into_o the_o fire_n and_o they_o be_v burn_v herein_o be_v my_o father_n glorify_v that_o you_o bear_v much_o fruit_n so_o shall_v you_o be_v my_o disciple_n as_o the_o father_n have_v love_v i_o so_o have_v i_o love_v you_o continue_v in_o my_o love_n if_o you_o keep_v my_o commandment_n you_o shall_v abide_v in_o my_o love_n even_o as_o i_o have_v keep_v my_o father_n commandment_n and_o abide_v in_o his_o love_n you_o be_v my_o friend_n if_o you_o do_v whatsoever_o i_o command_v you_o by_o all_o these_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n it_o be_v full_o evident_a that_o although_o we_o be_v graft_v in_o he_o and_o belove_v of_o he_o yet_o if_o we_o bear_v not_o fruit_n and_o keep_v not_o his_o commandment_n we_o shall_v neither_o remain_v in_o he_o nor_o be_v belove_v of_o he_o now_o st._n paul_n say_v to_o the_o galatian_n 1.6,8_o gal._n 1.6,8_o i_o marvel_v that_o you_o be_v so_o soon_o remove_v from_o he_o that_o call_v you_o into_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n unto_o another_o gospel_n and_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 8._o v._n but_o though_o we_o or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n preach_v another_o gospel_n unto_o you_o than_o that_o which_o we_o have_v preach_v unto_o you_o let_v he_o be_v accurse_v now_o by_o the_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n there_o be_v deceiver_n get_v in_o among_o the_o church_n of_o galatia_n which_o will_v have_v bring_v they_o to_o circumcision_n and_o make_v they_o also_o to_o observe_v the_o ceremonial_a law_n therefore_o he_o say_v 5.2_o gal._n 5.2_o i_o paul_n say_v unto_o you_o that_o if_o you_o be_v circumcise_v christ_n shall_v profit_v you_o nothing_o and_o again_o he_o say_v 2.16_o gal._n 2.16_o know_v that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n even_o we_o have_v believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n for_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v no_o flesh_n be_v justify_v now_o whereas_o he_o say_v no_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n that_o be_v man_n be_v not_o able_a to_o fulfil_v all_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n in_o that_o perfection_n as_o be_v require_v of_o he_o neither_o can_v it_o take_v away_o original_a sin_n so_o as_o a_o man_n can_v become_v justify_v by_o it_o yet_o they_o be_v so_o far_o able_a to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n as_o to_o walk_v blameless_o in_o it_o as_o in_o luke_n 1.6_o and_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n time_n accept_v of_o god_n for_o it_o through_o the_o then_o promise_v messiah_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v by_o the_o faith_n that_o jesus_n christ_n require_v of_o we_o and_o he_o say_v we_o have_v believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n now_o whereas_o he_o say_v they_o have_v believe_v in_o christ_n that_o include_v a_o belief_n in_o his_o whole_a reveal_v will_n in_o his_o word_n and_o in_o his_o word_n he_o tell_v we_o if_o we_o will_v enter_v into_o life_n we_o must_v keep_v the_o commandment_n therefore_o st._n paul_n by_o what_o he_o here_o say_v have_v no_o intention_n to_o take_v they_o off_o the_o moral_a law_n for_o they_o can_v be_v save_v if_o after_o they_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n they_o will_v not_o walk_v in_o obedience_n to_o it_o but_o it_o be_v the_o ceremonial_a law_n which_o some_o false_a brethren_n will_v have_v bring_v in_o to_o have_v burden_a the_o church_n withal_o whereby_o they_o will_v have_v make_v the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n of_o none_o effect_n for_o man_n salvation_n and_o justification_n therefore_o he_o say_v 3.1,2,3,4,5,6_o gal._n 3.1,2,3,4,5,6_o o_o foolish_a galatian_n who_o have_v bewitch_v you_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o obey_v the_o truth_n before_o who_o eye_n jesus_n christ_n have_v be_v evident_o set_v forth_o crucify_v among_o you_o this_o only_a will_v i_o learn_v of_o you_o receive_v you_o the_o spirit_n by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n or_o by_o the_o hear_n of_o faith_n be_v you_o so_o foolish_a have_v begin_v in_o the_o spirit_n be_v you_o now_o make_v perfect_a in_o the_o flesh_n have_v you_o suffer_v so_o many_o thing_n in_o vain_a if_o it_o be_v yet_o in_o vain_a here_o we_o see_v that_o these_o galatian_n have_v upon_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n receive_v the_o spirit_n and_o that_o they_o have_v suffer_v many_o thing_n as_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n yet_o st._n paul_n be_v here_o afraid_a of_o their_o final_a fall_v off_o by_o reason_n of_o deceiver_n that_o be_v get_v in_o among_o they_o which_o will_v have_v have_v they_o trust_v to_o circumcision_n purification_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o justification_n and_o not_o unto_o christ_n which_o law_n be_v all_o abolish_v at_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v that_o only_a sacrifice_n that_o can_v make_v satisfaction_n to_o take_v away_o sin_n and_o all_o other_o sacrifice_n be_v but_o to_o figure_n out_o he_o who_o be_v alone_o able_a to_o make_v that_o great_a atonement_n with_o god_n therefore_o st._n paul_n reprove_v they_o sharp_o that_o have_v begin_v in_o the_o spirit_n they_o shall_v think_v to_o be_v make_v perfect_a by_o the_o flesh_n and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o in_o the_o 5._o v._n he_o therefore_o that_o minister_v to_o you_o the_o spirit_n and_o work_v miracle_n among_o you_o do_v he_o it_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n or_o by_o the_o hear_n of_o faith_n 6._o v._n even_o as_o abraham_n believe_v god_n and_o it_o be_v account_v to_o he_o for_o righteousness_n faith_n or_o belief_n in_o we_o towards_o god_n and_o christ_n consist_v of_o three_o distinct_a part_n first_o a_o belief_n in_o and_o a_o practical_a consent_n to_o the_o condition_n upon_o which_o life_n and_o salvation_n be_v offer_v by_o god_n the_o second_o be_v a_o belief_n in_o the_o power_n and_o faithfulness_n of_o the_o promiser_n for_o the_o thing_n promise_v the_o three_o be_v a_o entire_a affection_n with_o real_a thankfulness_n to_o the_o promiser_n for_o the_o thing_n promise_v now_o these_o three_o thing_n be_v find_v in_o the_o belief_n of_o faithful_a abraham_n for_o he_o leave_v his_o own_o country_n to_o follow_v the_o lord_n and_o give_v himself_o whole_o up_o to_o love_v and_o obey_v he_o as_o witness_v the_o offering_n of_o his_o son_n and_o also_o judge_v he_o faithful_a that_o have_v promise_v he_o the_o blessing_n and_o st._n paul_n say_v to_o the_o like_a effect_n of_o himself_o in_o the_o forego_n chap._n 2.19,20_o gal._n 2.19,20_o for_o i_o through_o the_o law_n be_o dead_a to_o the_o law_n that_o i_o may_v live_v unto_o god_n that_o be_v dead_a to_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n not_o to_o the_o moral_a law_n for_o he_o as_o well_o as_o abraham_n be_v conformable_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o do_v justice_n and_o judgement_n for_o which_o the_o lord_n do_v confirm_v his_o promise_n to_o abraham_n as_o in_o the_o 19_o v._o 18.19_o gen._n 18.19_o god_n say_v i_o know_v he_o that_o he_o will_v command_v his_o child_n and_o his_o household_n after_o he_o and_o they_o shall_v keep_v the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o do_v justice_n and_o judgement_n that_o the_o lord_n may_v bring_v upon_o abraham_n that_o which_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o he_o and_o st._n paul_n say_v in_o the_o 20._o v._n 2.20_o gal._n 2.20_o i_o be_o crucify_v with_o christ_n nevertheless_o i_o live_v yet_o not_o i_o but_o christ_n live_v in_o i_o and_o the_o life_n which_o i_o now_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n i_o live_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o love_v i_o and_o give_v himself_o for_o i_o we_o see_v here_o st._n paul_n say_v he_o be_v crucify_v with_o christ_n that_o be_v he_o be_v dead_a to_o the_o world_n and_o to_o the_o pleasure_n thereof_o yet_o he_o say_v that_o he_o live_v yet_o he_o say_v again_o not_o i_o but_o christ_n live_v in_o i_o that_o be_v he_o have_v so_o whole_o give_v himself_o up_o to_o christ_n and_o bring_v down_o his_o thought_n into_o subjection_n unto_o he_o so_o as_o christ_n have_v the_o reign_a power_n in_o he_o so_o as_o the_o life_n which_o he_o then_o live_v be_v by_o faith_n in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o faith_n be_v he_o
the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o the_o check_n of_o conscience_n all_o which_o improve_v be_v able_a to_o make_v wise_a unto_o salvation_n but_o as_o the_o lord_n say_v some_o hear_v the_o word_n and_o with_o joy_n receive_v it_o and_o believe_v for_o a_o while_n yet_o in_o time_n of_o temptation_n fall_v away_o luke_n 8.13_o this_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n that_o some_o may_v practical_o believe_v and_o yet_o afterward_o fall_v away_o and_o other_o there_o be_v that_o have_v live_v a_o loose_a life_n which_o afterward_o may_v fall_v under_o the_o terror_n of_o conscience_n by_o which_o they_o may_v be_v fright_v from_o their_o evil_a practice_n after_o which_o some_o build_v their_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o hope_n of_o salvation_n upon_o this_o their_o conversion_n but_o rest_v there_o without_o further_a improve_n the_o advantage_n that_o god_n put_v into_o their_o hand_n in_o turn_v the_o strong_a man_n out_o of_o possession_n therefore_o the_o old_a inhabitant_n again_o return_v and_o find_v they_o or_o he_o empty_a of_o true_a love_n to_o god_n and_o to_o the_o way_n of_o holiness_n and_o only_o the_o house_n or_o person_n fine_o garnish_v with_o a_o outward_a show_n of_o profession_n than_o he_o again_o take_v possession_n of_o his_o old_a habitation_n with_o more_o corrupt_a inclination_n than_o before_o and_o so_o the_o latter_a end_n be_v much_o worse_o with_o such_o than_o their_o beginning_n luke_n 11.21,22,24,25,26_o but_o such_o will_v be_v bless_v whether_o they_o fall_v under_o a_o terror_n or_o not_o that_o keep_v to_o a_o close_o walk_v with_o god_n in_o a_o childlike_a frame_n of_o spirit_n in_o love_n and_o obedience_n to_o he_o for_o he_o that_o walk_v upright_o walk_v sure_o prov._n 10.9_o and_o the_o lord_n say_v god_n be_v a_o spirit_n and_o they_o that_o worship_v he_o must_v worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n and_o it_o be_v only_o such_o as_o hold_v out_o to_o the_o end_n that_o have_v the_o sure_a word_n of_o promise_n to_o receive_v the_o crown_n of_o life_n but_o as_o for_o the_o very_a elect_n which_o follow_v the_o lamb_n whithersoever_o he_o go_v and_o cry_v day_n and_o night_n unto_o he_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o oppression_n of_o the_o adversary_n and_o never_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o beast_n or_o false_a prophet_n matth._n 24.24_o rev._n 14.4_o luke_n 18.7_o of_o which_o number_n we_o can_v be_v because_o all_o our_o predecessor_n come_v out_o of_o popery_n neither_o be_v we_o of_o that_o remnant_n but_o these_o be_v they_o of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v the_o foundation_n stand_v sure_a and_o of_o who_o christ_n say_v none_o shall_v pluck_v they_o out_o of_o his_o hand_n and_o it_o be_v to_o his_o disciple_n that_o be_v of_o that_o remnant_n to_o who_o he_o promise_v to_o be_v with_o they_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o also_o that_o he_o will_v forsake_v none_o whilst_o they_o keep_v to_o the_o rule_n that_o he_o have_v set_v before_o they_o but_o the_o remnant_n be_v to_o remain_v his_o witness_n all_o the_o time_n of_o this_o world_n against_o the_o power_n of_o this_o enemy_n by_o who_o they_o have_v be_v often_o drive_v unto_o den_n and_o cave_n of_o the_o earth_n chap._n four_o believer_n justify_v by_o christ_n which_o they_o can_v not_o be_v by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n saint_n paul_n say_v act_v 13.37,38,39_o be_v it_o know_v unto_o you_o therefore_o man_n and_o brethren_n that_o through_o this_o man_n be_v preach_v unto_o you_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o by_o he_o all_o that_o believe_v be_v justify_v from_o all_o thing_n from_o which_o they_o can_v not_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n this_o may_v be_v take_v under_o a_o twofold_a head_n 1._o that_o none_o can_v perform_v the_o moral_a law_n to_o that_o perfection_n as_o thereby_o to_o become_v justify_v by_o it_o without_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o apostle_n have_v here_o his_o reference_n to_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n in_o that_o he_o term_v it_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n which_o in_o this_o book_n in_o several_a place_n he_o treat_v of_o the_o abolish_n of_o for_o those_o thing_n therein_o contain_v in_o keep_v they_o can_v no_o way_n purify_v the_o conscience_n but_o keep_v the_o command_v of_o god_n do_v purify_v the_o conscience_n and_o thereby_o produce_v a_o holy_a life_n so_o as_o we_o may_v with_o boldness_n look_v by_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n to_o christ_n for_o acceptance_n and_o justification_n through_o the_o imputation_n of_o his_o perfect_a righteousness_n for_o st._n paul_n say_v act_v 13.26_o whosoever_o among_o you_o fear_v god_n to_o you_o be_v the_o word_n of_o this_o salvation_n send_v and_o he_o say_v heb._n 11.6_o he_o that_o come_v to_o god_n must_v believe_v that_o he_o be_v and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o rewarder_n of_o they_o that_o diligent_o seek_v he_o for_o which_o promise_n sake_n he_o also_o say_v act_v 26.7_o our_o twelve_o tribe_n instant_o serve_v god_n day_n and_o night_n hope_v to_o come_v whereby_o we_o see_v there_o be_v some_o of_o every_o tribe_n then_o convert_v to_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o these_o be_v they_o unto_o who_o st._n james_n write_v james_n 1.1_o to_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n which_o be_v scatter_v abroad_o greeting_n these_o be_v they_o that_o be_v say_v to_o follow_v the_o lamb_n whithersoever_o he_o go_v rev._n 14.4_o and_o of_o these_o it_o be_v say_v of_o every_o tribe_n be_v to_o be_v seal_v twelve_o thousand_o rev._n 7._o and_o all_o along_o in_o the_o word_n all_o be_v encourage_v to_o run_v the_o race_n for_o the_o hope_n be_v sake_n set_v before_o they_o and_o that_o they_o shall_v reap_v that_o faint_v not_o gal._n ch._n 4._o v._n 9_o 2._o st._n paul_n relate_v how_o he_o be_v send_v of_o the_o lord_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n act_v 26.16_o and_o what_o shall_v be_v the_o effect_n of_o his_o preach_n as_o in_o the_o 18._o verse_n to_o open_v their_o eye_n and_o to_o turn_v they_o from_o darkness_n to_o light_n and_o from_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n unto_o god_n that_o they_o may_v receive_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o a_o inheritance_n among_o they_o which_o be_v sanctify_v by_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o i_o these_o word_n show_v that_o until_o they_o be_v turn_v from_o darkness_n unto_o light_n and_o from_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n unto_o god_n so_o as_o satan_n must_v whole_o lose_v his_o roll_a power_n in_o the_o heart_n before_o they_o can_v receive_v remission_n of_o their_o sin_n as_o to_o be_v sanctify_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o st._n paul_n say_v rom._n 9.30_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v then_o that_o the_o gentile_n which_o follow_v not_o after_o righteousness_n have_v attain_v to_o righteousness_n even_o the_o righteousness_n which_o be_v of_o faith_n that_o be_v the_o first_o church_n be_v bring_v out_o of_o sin_n and_o darkness_n by_o a_o belief_n in_o the_o gospel_n and_o a_o willingness_n to_o yield_v their_o obedience_n thereunto_o thereby_o they_o become_v justify_v through_o the_o imputation_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n for_o a_o soulsaving_a faith_n be_v of_o a_o purify_n quality_n as_o know_v by_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o be_v his_o servant_n to_o who_o they_o yield_v themselves_o to_o obey_v whether_o of_o sin_n unto_o death_n or_o of_o obedience_n unto_o righteousness_n rom._n 6.16_o and_o also_o saint_n peter_n say_v of_o the_o first_o gentile_a church_n that_o god_n purify_v their_o heart_n by_o faith_n act_v 15.9_o for_o have_v a_o faith_n or_o belief_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o be_v therein_o command_v to_o be_v holy_a in_o all_o manner_n of_o conversation_n 1_o pet._n 1.15_o and_o st._n paul_n say_v rom._n 9.31_o but_o israel_n which_o follow_v after_o the_o law_n of_o righteousness_n have_v not_o attain_v to_o the_o law_n of_o righteousness_n wherefore_o because_o they_o seek_v it_o not_o by_o faith_n but_o as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n for_o they_o stumble_v at_o that_o stumble_a stone_n now_o the_o question_n be_v what_o be_v the_o law_n of_o righteousness_n which_o israel_n follow_v after_o and_o what_o be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n they_o trust_v in_o the_o law_n of_o righteousness_n and_o work_n of_o the_o law_n which_o they_o trust_v in_o be_v the_o ceremonial_a law_n with_o the_o tithe_n of_o mint_n anise_v and_o cummin_n but_o they_o leave_v the_o weighty_a matter_n of_o the_o law_n undo_v as_o judgement_n mercy_n and_o faith_n mat._n 23.23,24,25,26,27_o for_o which_o their_o evil_a practice_n they_o be_v term_v a_o generation_n of_o viper_n mat._n 3.7,8,9_o but_o whereas_o christ_n say_v of_o they_o they_o have_v not_o faith_n be_v not_o only_o because_o they_o believe_v not_o in_o he_o but_o also_o because_o they_o believe_v the_o word_n
of_o god_n by_o half_n as_o to_o the_o threaten_n and_o mercy_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o word_n which_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o salvation_n to_o the_o obedient_a and_o likewise_o punishment_n to_o the_o disobedient_a but_o they_o like_o we_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o half_n perform_v the_o lesser_a matter_n of_o the_o law_n but_o leave_v the_o weight_n ier_fw-fr undo_v for_o which_o christ_n be_v lay_v in_o zion_n as_o a_o stumble_a stone_n so_o as_o they_o shall_v not_o believe_v in_o he_o but_o this_o their_o disobedience_n be_v appoint_v they_o for_o their_o former_a rebellion_n and_o the_o stroke_n fall_v upon_o their_o child_n that_o be_v alike_o partaker_n with_o they_o in_o iniquity_n now_o the_o faith_n that_o have_v be_v so_o long_o want_v in_o they_o be_v that_o which_o christ_n in_o a_o more_o particular_a manner_n speak_v to_o in_o that_o they_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o half_n be_v clear_a by_o the_o parable_n which_o he_o put_v forth_o concern_v lazarus_n and_o the_o rich_a man_n in_o his_o request_n to_o abraham_n that_o he_o will_v send_v lazarus_n to_o his_o brethren_n to_o warn_v they_o that_o they_o may_v escape_v that_o place_n of_o torment_n but_o abraham_n say_v they_o have_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n let_v they_o hear_v they_o but_o he_o still_o persist_v say_v if_o one_o go_v to_o they_o from_o the_o dead_a they_o will_v repent_v but_o abraham_n say_v if_o they_o hear_v not_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n neither_o will_v they_o be_v persuade_v though_o one_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a luke_n 16.27_o etc._n etc._n whereby_o it_o clear_o show_v that_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n as_o they_o shall_v have_v do_v so_o as_o to_o have_v live_v a_o holy_a life_n saint_n peter_n say_v of_o christ_n act_v 10.43_o to_o he_o give_v all_o the_o prophet_n witness_n that_o through_o his_o name_n whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v such_o as_o believe_v in_o he_o according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o his_o word_n and_o gospel_n in_o which_o he_o require_v our_o observe_v to_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o command_v we_o matth._n 28.20_o and_o upon_o the_o will_n be_v consent_v to_o these_o condition_n they_o receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o follow_a verse_n while_o peter_n speak_v these_o word_n the_o holy_a ghost_n fall_v on_o all_o they_o which_o hear_v the_o word_n now_o these_o that_o at_o this_o time_n hear_v the_o word_n on_o who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n thus_o sudden_o sell_v be_v before_o proselyte_n of_o the_o gentile_n who_o true_o fear_v god_n &_o wrought_v righteousness_n as_o in_o ver_fw-la 34._o and_o 35._o but_o other_o that_o believe_v of_o the_o first_o church_n which_o have_v before_o live_v in_o sin_n be_v to_o repent_v and_o be_v haptize_v before_o they_o can_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n chap._n v._o such_o as_o have_v believe_v may_v afterward_o fall_v away_o saint_n peter_n say_v act_v 3.19_o repent_v you_o therefore_o and_o be_v convert_v that_o your_o sin_n may_v be_v blot_v out_o when_o the_o time_n of_o refresh_v shall_v come_v from_o the_o persence_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o these_o word_n he_o show_v that_o upon_o repentance_n and_o resignation_n of_o themselves_o to_o christ_n for_o he_o to_o have_v the_o roll_a power_n in_o the_o heart_n at_o which_o time_n it_o be_v that_o such_o receive_v the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n yet_o their_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o text_n be_v not_o blot_v out_o until_o the_o time_n of_o refresh_v shall_v come_v from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n so_o as_o if_o they_o again_o wilful_o yield_v to_o sin_n their_o former_a trespass_n will_v again_o be_v require_v of_o they_o the_o like_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o the_o parable_n concern_v the_o servant_n that_o owe_v ten_o thousand_o talent_n who_o beseech_v his_o lord_n for_o pardon_n and_o his_o lord_n forgive_v he_o the_o debt_n but_o for_o the_o cruel_a usage_n of_o his_o fellow-servant_n his_o lord_n again_o require_v his_o former_a debt_n for_o which_o he_o deliver_v he_o to_o the_o tormentor_n for_o that_o debt_n which_o he_o have_v before_o forgive_v he_o matth._n 18.24,26,27,30,34_o and_o the_o lord_n say_v ezek_n 33.13,14,15_o when_o i_o shall_v say_v to_o the_o righteous_a that_o he_o shall_v sure_o live_v if_o he_o trust_v to_o his_o own_o righteousness_n and_o commit_v iniquity_n all_o his_o righteousness_n shall_v not_o be_v remember_v but_o for_o his_o iniquity_n that_o he_o have_v commit_v he_o shall_v die_v for_o it_o again_o when_o i_o say_v to_o the_o wicked_a thou_o shall_v sure_o die_v if_o he_o turn_v from_o his_o sin_n and_o do_v that_o which_o be_v lawful_a and_o right_a he_o shall_v sure_o live_v he_o shall_v not_o die_v here_o we_o see_v that_o the_o promise_n of_o life_n be_v no_o long_o to_o the_o righteous_a man_n than_o he_o continue_v to_o do_v righteous_o neither_o be_v the_o threaten_a death_n to_o the_o wicked_a any_o long_a than_o he_o continue_v to_o do_v wicked_o so_o likewise_o neither_o be_v the_o eternal_a life_n promise_v the_o believer_n of_o any_o long_a continuance_n than_o he_o persist_v believe_v that_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v have_v according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o which_o gospel_n be_v require_v our_o love_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n matth._n 10.37_o christ_n say_v he_o that_o love_v father_n or_o mother_n more_o than_o i_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o i_o and_o he_o also_o say_v mark_v 8.34,35_o whosoever_o will_v come_v after_o i_o let_v he_o deny_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n and_o follow_v i_o for_o whosoever_o will_v save_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o but_o whosoever_o shall_v lose_v his_o life_n for_o my_o sake_n and_o the_o gospel_n the_o same_o shall_v save_v it_o whereby_o it_o clear_o show_v that_o we_o must_v part_v with_o the_o delight_n advantage_n and_o pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n for_o christ_n as_o well_o as_o life_n itself_o when_v call_v for_o and_o christ_n say_v of_o some_o that_o they_o receive_v the_o word_n with_o joy_n and_o for_o a_o while_o believe_v and_o in_o time_n of_o temptation_n fall_v away_o luke_n 8.13_o whereby_o the_o lord_n full_o declare_v the_o promise_n be_v no_o long_o to_o the_o believer_n than_o he_o remain_v believe_v in_o he_o and_o his_o word_n which_o word_n require_v our_o practical_a obedience_n the_o which_o if_o we_o perform_v then_o be_v we_o his_o disciple_n indeed_o for_o not_o the_o hearer_n of_o the_o law_n be_v just_a before_o god_n but_o the_o doer_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v justify_v rom._n 2.13_o but_o the_o first_o church_n be_v in_o a_o particular_a manner_n choose_v and_o call_v unto_o who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v give_v whereby_o they_o general_o stand_v though_o some_o fall_v away_o by_o make_v shipwreck_n of_o faith_n and_o a_o good_a conscience_n 1_o tim._n 1.19_o but_o to_o the_o succeed_a generation_n of_o the_o gentile-churche_n that_o come_v in_o by_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gospel_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o good_a motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n of_o who_o christ_n say_v many_o be_v call_v but_o few_o be_v choose_v because_o of_o their_o not_o improve_n of_o their_o day_n of_o grace_n which_o god_n have_v put_v into_o their_o hand_n matth._n 20.16_o chap._n vi_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jailor_n concern_v the_o jailor_n act_v 16.30,31,32,33_o when_o after_o he_o be_v awake_v by_o the_o miracle_n he_o see_v he_o then_o say_v sir_n what_o must_v i_o do_v to_o be_v save_v and_o they_o say_v believe_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o thy_o house_n and_o they_o speak_v unto_o he_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o all_o that_o be_v in_o his_o house_n the_o which_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v that_o which_o he_o command_v his_o disciple_n to_o teach_v which_o be_v the_o condition_n upon_o which_o christ_n have_v offer_v salvation_n mat._n 28.20_o teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o i_o have_v command_v you_o the_o which_o upon_o their_o will_n consent_v to_o yield_v their_o love_n and_o obedience_n in_o a_o belief_n that_o christ_n be_v able_a to_o save_v they_o they_o be_v baptize_v and_o concern_v philip_n and_o the_o eunuch_n act_v 8.35,36,37_o then_o philip_n open_v his_o mouth_n and_o begin_v at_o the_o same_o scripture_n and_o preach_v unto_o he_o jesus_n and_o as_o they_o go_v on_o their_o way_n they_o come_v to_o a_o certain_a water_n and_o the_o eunuch_n say_v see_v here_o be_v water_n what_o do_v hinder_v i_o to_o be_v baptize_v and_o philip_n say_v if_o thou_o believe_v with_o all_o thy_o heart_n thou_o may_v and_o he_o answer_v and_o say_v
maker_n 〈◊〉_d heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o all_o thing_n ●…rein_o contain_v whether_o visible_a or_o in●…ble_a and_o that_o out_o of_o the_o 2.7_o gen._n 2.7_o dust_n of_o the_o ●…und_n god_n create_v man_n and_o breathe_v in●…_n he_o the_o breath_n of_o life_n and_o thereby_o ●…n_o become_v a_o 28._o gen._n 28._o live_a soul_n and_o be_v place_v 〈◊〉_d god_n in_o 1.26,27_o gen._n 1.26,27_o eden_n the_o garden_n of_o god_n in_o ●…oly_a happy_a bless_a state_n and_o god_n ●…ve_v they_o power_n over_o the_o fish_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d the_o fowl_n of_o the_o air_n and_o the_o beast_n 〈◊〉_d the_o field_n and_o over_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o over_o every_o thing_n that_o creep_v on_o the_o earth_n and_o man_n shall_v have_v so_o continue_v in_o this_o bless_a and_o happy_a state_n 2.17_o gen._n 2.17_o never_o to_o have_v know_v decay_n sickness_n forrow_n or_o death_n have_v he_o not_o there_o sin_v against_o his_o great_a creator_n and_o his_o most_o liberal_a benefactor_n 3.4,5_o gen._n 3.4,5_o in_o that_o they_o do_v adhere_v to_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o devil_n and_o believe_v what_o he_o say_v and_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o god_n of_o truth_n for_o which_o they_o be_v turn_v out_o of_o paradise_n 3.23_o gen._n 3.23_o and_o become_v more_o vile_a and_o miserable_a than_o all_o creature_n that_o have_v their_o be_v upon_o earth_n and_o so_o it_o will_v have_v succeed_v to_o his_o unborn_a posterity_n 4.8_o job_n 14.4_o psal_n 51.5_o job_n 4.8_o for_o now_o their_o nature_n become_v corrupt_v so_o as_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n and_o wisdom_n which_o be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n stamp_v upon_o they_o now_o have_v leave_v th●m_n and_o be_v quite_o deface_v in_o they_o and_o they_o become_v 〈◊〉_d like_o the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n which_o be_v ●…e_a devil_n who_o for_o his_o pride_n and_o rebel●●n_n against_o god_n he_o and_o his_o adherent_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o heaven_n and_o from_o glorious_a angel_n become_v devil_n in_o hell_n and_o be_v keep_v in_o chain_n of_o darkness_n unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o great_a day_n of_o god_n who_o be_v to_o be_v punish_v eternal_o in_o hell-fire_n 2.4_o joh._n 3.44_o joh._n 3.8_o judas_n 6._o 2_o pet._n 2.4_o but_o god_n look_v on_o mankind_n in_o their_o forlorn_a and_o miserable_a condition_n with_o a_o eye_n of_o pity_n and_o compassion_n give_v they_o a_o word_n of_o comfort_n which_o be_v that_o the_o 3.15_o gen._n 3.15_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n shall_v bruise_v the_o serpent_n head_n which_o be_v the_o devil_n and_o god_n say_v that_o he_o will_v put_v enmity_n between_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o serpent_n and_o in_o that_o god_n have_v compassion_n on_o mankind_n rather_o than_o upon_o the_o fall_v angel_n so_o as_o to_o send_v they_o a_o saviour_n 1.21_o luk._n 2.11_o mat._n 1.21_o there_o be_v this_o reason_n the_o fall_v angel_n be_v the_o principal_a and_o alone_a cause_n of_o their_o own_o rebellion_n but_o mankind_n be_v stir_v up_o to_o it_o through_o the_o subtle_a insinuation_n and_o lie_n of_o the_o devil_n 3.1_o gen._n 3.1_o and_o therefore_o mankind_n have_v a_o tender_a of_o grace_n offer_v they_o if_o we_o receive_v it_o according_a to_o the_o condition_n as_o it_o be_v offer_v we_o which_o be_v with_o repentance_n towards_o god_n and_o faith_n towards_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n with_o love_n and_o obedience_n to_o he_o to_o who_o all_o the_o prophet_n bear_v witness_v ●…aring_v he_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n 〈◊〉_d speak_v of_o his_o suffering_n and_o of_o his_o death_n and_o of_o his_o rise_n again_o 13.34_o act._n 20.21_o act._n 4.12_o act._n 3.23,26_o isa_n 7.14_o isa_n 53._o ps_n 16.10_o act._n 2.24_o &_o 13.34_o i_o believe_v in_o this_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n ●hat_n he_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n who_o give_v himself_o to_o satisfy_v divine_a justice_n and_o to_o make_v reconciliation_n for_o poor_a ●ost_o be_v undo_v creature_n which_o be_v dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n through_o that_o ●f_n adam_n transgression_n 2.4,5_o joh._n 1.14_o joh._n 10.15,18_o eph._n 2.1_o heb._n 9.14_o 2_o cor._n 3.5_o gen._n 6.5_o rev._n 3.17_o rom._n 7.15_o job_n 4.20_o isa_n 30.33_o 2_o pet._n 2.4,5_o whereby_o our_o nature_n become_v so_o corrupt_a that_o we_o have_v ●est_v we_o neither_o strength_n to_o stand_v 〈◊〉_d will●…_n stri●…_n nor_o 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o in_o which_o woeful_a condition_n we_o shall_v have_v spend_v some_o few_o day_n here_o and_o after_o which_o be_v plunge_v into_o hell_n itself_o for_o ever_o and_o there_o to_o have_v be_v torment_v with_o the_o devil_n and_o damn_a spirit_n 1.1,2,3_o luk._n 16.32_o jud._n 7._o isa_n 5.15_o deut._n 32.22_o joh._n 1.1,2,3_o without_o any_o redress_n have_v not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o second_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n who_o to_o fulfil_v his_o father_n promise_n and_o for_o the_o wonderful_a love_n he_o bear_v to_o his_o creature_n he_o leave_v the_o throne_n of_o his_o father_n glory_n where_o he_o have_v be_v from_o all_o eternity_n and_o do_v vouchsafe_v to_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o mean_n of_o our_o flesh_n and_o therein_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n 1.30,31,32_o matt._n 1.20,21_o luk._n 1.30,31,32_o but_o bear_v of_o she_o without_o sin_n and_o when_o he_o come_v into_o the_o world_n he_o then_o suffer_v the_o misery_n of_o this_o life_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o the_o curse_a death_n of_o the_o cross_n that_o through_o death_n he_o may_v destroy_v he_o that_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n which_o be_v the_o devil_n and_o deliver_v they_o who_o through_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n be_v all_o their_o life-time_n subject_a to_o bondage_n 2.14,15_o luk._n 23.35,36_o luk._n 23.33_o and_o 44_o 45_o 46._o heb._n 2.14,15_o and_o the_o lord_n of_o life_n be_v bury_v descend_v into_o hell_n and_o continue_v under_o the_o power_n of_o death_n till_o the_o three_o day_n 24.6,7_o luk._n 24.6,7_o in_o which_o he_o rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a as_o a_o triumphant_a victor_n over_o sin_n death_n and_o hell_n and_o after_o his_o resurrection_n he_o be_v see_v o●_n all_o his_o apostle_n 15.5,6_o 1_o cor._n 15.5,6_o and_o of_o above_o 500_o brother_n at_o once_o and_o remain_v upon_o the_o earth_n for_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o day_n and_o then_o he_o go_v to_o mount_n olivet_n with_o his_o disciple_n and_o more_o witness_n 1.3.9,10,11,12_o act._n 1.3.9,10,11,12_o and_o from_o thence_o he_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n and_o now_o sit_v at_o the_o right-hand_a of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o there_o make_v intercession_n for_o the_o saint_n according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n 6.7.25_o heb._n 1.3_o joh._n 12.41_o rom._n 8.34_o heb._n 6.7.25_o i_o believe_v also_o that_o assure_o there_o be_v life_n and_o salvation_n to_o be_v have_v through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n if_o we_o come_v to_o he_o by_o faith_n and_o repentance_n so_o as_o to_o confess_v and_o forsake_v our_o sin_n and_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o his_o word_n so_o that_o we_o unfeigned_o love_v and_o fear_v to_o offend_v he_o we_o shall_v be_v belove_v of_o he_o and_o make_v eternal_o bless_v by_o he_o through_o his_o perfect_a righteousness_n which_o shall_v be_v impute_v to_o we_o who_o be_v able_a to_o preserve_v we_o in_o time_n and_o in_o eternity_n i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o he_o be_v the_o sanctifier_n of_o our_o nature_n whereby_o our_o will_n be_v renew_v so_o as_o to_o desire_v to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n in_o truth_n and_o in_o sincerity_n and_o also_o in_o time_n of_o trouble_n he_o do_v often_o administer_v comfort_n and_o consolation_n to_o the_o saint_n 5.26_o act_n 20.21_o and_o 3.19_o john_n 14.21_o joh._n 8.31_o jer._n 23.6_o rom._n 8.14_o 1_o cor._n 3.15_o gal._n 5.16_o 1_o cor._n 1.22_o joh._n 5.26_o i_o believe_v there_o be_v a_o holy_a catholic_n church_n a_o member_n of_o which_o be_v every_o sincere_a heart_a christian_a throughout_o the_o world_n that_o worship_v the_o lord_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n for_o our_o bless_a lord_n say_v 4.23,24_o john_n 4.23,24_o that_o the_o father_n seek_v such_o to_o worship_v he_o i_o believe_v there_o will_v be_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n and_o life_n everlasting_a for_o the_o righteous_a and_o eternal_a damnation_n for_o they_o that_o go_v on_o in_o their_o wicked_a way_n i_o believe_v also_o that_o the_o lord_n will_v come_v in_o the_o last_o day_n in_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n to_o render_v vengeance_n to_o his_o adversary_n and_o those_o that_o know_v not_o god_n and_o will_v not_o obey_v the_o gospel_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 9.28_o 1_o cor._n 15.21,22_o joh._n 5.28,29_o col._n 1.18_o matt._n 25.46_o john_n 11.24_o act_n 1.11_o 2_o thess_n
faith_n which_o some_o take_v up_o with_o nowadays_o which_o be_v no_o other_o than_o of_o the_o devil_n coin_v and_o his_o accomplice_n in_o that_o they_o say_v he_o that_o believe_v through_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v therefore_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v if_o they_o do_v but_o also_o confess_v their_o sin_n leave_v out_o repent_v and_o forsake_v they_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a word_n of_o god_n and_o as_o st._n peter_n say_v they_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o destruction_n 3.10_o 2_o pet._n 3.10_o i_o hope_v the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n have_v not_o so_o blind_v their_o mind_n but_o that_o they_o will_v own_v that_o those_o do_v believe_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v when_o they_o say_v to_o the_o lord_n christ_n in_o matth._n 22._o vers_fw-la 7.22.23_o mat._n 7.22.23_o have_v we_o not_o prophesy_v in_o thy_o name_n and_o in_o thy_o name_n cast_v out_o devil_n and_o in_o thy_o name_n do_v many_o wonderful_a work_n then_o will_v the_o lord_n profess_v unto_o they_o that_o he_o never_o know_v they_o depart_v from_o i_o you_o that_o work_n iniquity_n and_o also_o that_o the_o foolish_a virgin_n do_v believe_v they_o shall_v be_v save_v when_o they_o say_v in_o matth._n 25.11,12_o mat._n 25.11,12_o lord_n lord_n open_a to_o we_o but_o he_o shall_v answer_v and_o say_v very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o i_o know_v you_o not_o and_o whereas_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o john_n 47._o v._n 6.47_o joh._n 6.47_o very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o i_o have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o whereas_o st._n john_n say_v vers_fw-la 12._o 5.12_o 1_o john_n 5.12_o he_o that_o have_v the_o son_n have_v life_n and_o he_o that_o have_v not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v not_o life_n and_o also_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o john_n 6.40_o 6.40_o joh._n 6.40_o and_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o he_o that_o send_v i_o that_o every_o one_o which_o see_v the_o son_n and_o believe_v on_o he_o may_v have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n i_o hope_v upon_o serious_a consideration_n none_o will_v say_v they_o believe_v in_o christ_n for_o salvation_n when_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v what_o the_o lord_n say_v concern_v the_o condition_n upon_o which_o salvation_n be_v tender_v by_o he_o the_o which_o condition_n be_v repentance_n love_n and_o new_a obedience_n and_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o john_n 8.31_o v._o to_o the_o jew_n which_o believe_v on_o he_o 8.31,47,51_o john_n 8.31,47,51_o if_o you_o continue_v in_o my_o word_n then_o be_v you_o my_o disciple_n indeed_o and_o again_o in_o the_o 47._o vers_fw-la he_o that_o be_v of_o god_n hear_v god_n word_n you_o therefore_o hear_v they_o not_o because_o you_o be_v not_o of_o god_n and_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o the_o 51._o vers_fw-la very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o if_o a_o man_n keep_v my_o say_n he_o shall_v never_o see_v death_n that_o be_v he_o shall_v never_o see_v hell_n in_o esdras_n 2.39_o esd_v 2.39_o and_o the_o lord_n also_o say_v in_o john_n 21._o vers_n 14.21,24_o john_n 14.21,24_o he_o that_o have_v my_o commandment_n and_o keep_v they_o he_o it_o be_v that_o love_v i_o and_o he_o that_o love_v i_o shall_v be_v love_v of_o my_o father_n and_o i_o will_v love_v he_o and_o will_v manifest_v myself_o unto_o he_o and_o again_o in_o the_o 24._o v._n he_o that_o love_v i_o not_o keep_v not_o my_o say_n and_o the_o word_n which_o you_o hear_v be_v not_o i_o but_o the_o father_n which_o send_v i_o and_o christ_n say_v in_o the_o gospel_n of_o john_n 15.10_o joh._n 15.10_o if_o you_o keep_v my_o conmandment_n you_o shall_v abide_v in_o my_o love_n even_o as_o i_o have_v keep_v my_o father_n commandment_n and_o abide_v in_o his_o love_n and_o again_o the_o lord_n say_v 12.48_o joh._n 12.48_o he_o that_o reject_v i_o and_o receive_v not_o my_o word_n have_v one_o that_o judge_v he_o the_o word_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v the_o same_o shall_v judge_v he_o in_o the_o last_o day_n and_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 25._o v._n 12.25,26_o joh._n 12.25,26_o he_o that_o love_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o and_o he_o that_o hate_v his_o life_n in_o this_o world_n shall_v keep_v it_o unto_o life_n eternal_a if_o any_o man_n serve_v i_o let_v he_o follow_v i_o and_o where_o i_o be_o there_o shall_v also_o my_o servant_n be_v if_o any_o man_n serve_v i_o he_o will_v my_o father_n honour_n and_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o the_o jew_n 34._o v._n 8.34,44_o joh._n 8.34,44_o whosoever_o commit_v sin_n be_v the_o servant_n of_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o 44._o v._n he_o say_v to_o they_o you_o be_v of_o your_o father_n the_o devil_n and_o the_o lust_n of_o your_o father_n you_o will_v do_v but_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o they_o that_o will_v have_v a_o interest_n in_o he_o in_o the_o 34._o v._n 8.34,35,36,37,38_o mark_v 8.34,35,36,37,38_o whosoever_o will_v come_v after_o i_o let_v he_o deny_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n and_o follow_v i_o for_o whosoever_o will_v save_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o but_o whosoever_o shall_v lose_v his_o life_n for_o my_o sake_n and_o the_o gospel_n the_o same_o shall_v save_v it_o for_o what_o shall_v it_o profit_v a_o man_n if_o he_o shall_v gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v his_o own_o soul_n or_o what_o shall_v a_o man_n give_v in_o exchange_n for_o his_o soul_n whosoever_o therefore_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a of_o i_o and_o of_o my_o word_n in_o this_o adulterous_a and_o sinful_a generation_n of_o he_o also_o shall_v the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v ashamed_a when_o he_o come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n with_o the_o holy_a angel_n we_o here_o see_v by_o all_o this_o that_o it_o be_v a_o belief_n in_o christ_n and_o his_o word_n that_o be_v require_v of_o we_o unto_o which_o we_o be_v to_o show_v our_o love_n and_o obedience_n and_o st._n john_n say_v 4.15_o 1_o joh._n 4.15_o whosoever_o shall_v confess_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n god_n dwell_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o god_n and_o he_o far_o say_v in_o the_o 5._o c._n and_o 5._o v._n 5.5.13_o joh._n 5.5.13_o who_o be_v he_o that_o overcome_v the_o world_n but_o he_o that_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o again_o in_o the_o 13._o these_o thing_n have_v i_o write_v to_o you_o that_o believe_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o you_o have_v eternal_a life_n and_o that_o you_o may_v believe_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n can_v they_o think_v it_o be_v here_o mean_v only_o a_o verbal_a confession_n with_o their_o mouth_n be_v require_v when_o in_o their_o work_n and_o practice_n they_o deny_v he_o no_o it_o be_v the_o confess_v of_o he_o always_o be_v require_v as_o in_o our_o word_n and_o action_n will_n and_o affection_n in_o suffer_v unto_o death_n itself_o by_o which_o we_o see_v this_o word_n confess_v he_o have_v a_o large_a extent_n than_o some_o people_n be_v aware_a of_o who_o like_v unto_o the_o jew_n that_o think_v adultery_n be_v only_o in_o the_o action_n but_o the_o lord_n give_v they_o to_o understand_v that_o it_o have_v a_o far_o large_a extent_n when_o he_o say_v to_o they_o in_o matth._n 5.18_o mat._n 5.18_o that_o every_o one_o that_o look_v on_o a_o woman_n to_o lustafter_o she_o have_v commit_v adultery_n already_o with_o she_o in_o his_o heart_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v to_o believe_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v that_o seed_n that_o shall_v bruise_v the_o serpent_n head_n and_o make_v reconciliation_n for_o all_o that_o shall_v with_o love_n and_o thankfulness_n receive_v he_o for_o although_o all_o be_v free_o invite_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o come_v to_o he_o but_o it_o be_v none_o but_o they_o who_o will_n be_v bring_v over_o to_o he_o as_o to_o become_v obedient_a can_v receive_v he_o or_o the_o blessing_n purchase_v by_o he_o now_o all_o be_v willing_a to_o receive_v the_o benefit_n but_o all_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o perform_v the_o condition_n whereby_o they_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o blessing_n but_o like_o balaam_n say_v o_o that_o i_o may_v die_v the_o death_n of_o the_o righteous_a they_o be_v unwilling_a to_o forego_v this_o present_a evil_a world_n of_o who_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o isai_n 13._o v._n 29.13_o isa_n 29.13_o this_o people_n draw_v near_o i_o with_o their_o mouth_n and_o with_o their_o lip_n do_v honour_n i_o but_o have_v remove_v their_o heart_n far_o from_o i_o and_o their_o fear_n towards_o i_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o
wherefore_o because_o they_o seek_v it_o not_o by_o faith_n but_o as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n for_o they_o stumble_v at_o that_o stumble_a stone_n that_o be_v they_o seek_v it_o by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n which_o consist_v in_o sacrifice_n wash_n and_o often_o purification_n of_o which_o the_o apostle_n say_v 10.1,2_o heb._n 10.1,2_o for_o the_o law_n have_v a_o shadow_n of_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v and_o not_o the_o very_a image_n of_o the_o thing_n can_v never_o with_o those_o sacrifice_n which_o they_o offer_v year_n by_o year_n continual_o make_v the_o comer_n thereunto_o perfect_a for_o than_o will_v they_o have_v cease_v to_o be_v offer_v because_o that_o the_o worshipper_n once_o purge_v shall_v have_v have_v no_o more_o conscience_n of_o sin_n now_o this_o be_v the_o law_n to_o which_o israel_n trust_v to_o take_v away_o their_o sin_n of_o which_o law_n or_o statute_n god_n say_v 20.25_o ezek._n 20.25_o they_o be_v not_o good_a because_o as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o hebrew_n they_o be_v but_o a_o shadow_n of_o the_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v and_o therefore_o can_v not_o make_v the_o comer_n thereunto_o perfect_a but_o have_v israel_n employ_v their_o utmost_a diligence_n in_o their_o obedience_n to_o the_o moral_a law_n they_o have_v not_o be_v leave_v to_o stumble_v at_o that_o stumble_a stone_n as_o god_n by_o the_o prophet_n have_v declare_v and_o also_o christ_n himself_o say_v 23.23,24_o matth._n 23.23,24_o woe_n unto_o you_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n hypocrite_n for_o you_o pay_v tithe_n of_o mint_n and_o anise_v and_o cummin_n and_o have_v omit_v the_o weighty_a matter_n of_o the_o law_n judgement_n mercy_n and_o faith_n these_o ought_v you_o to_o have_v do_v and_o not_o to_o leave_v the_o other_o undo_v you_o blind_a guide_n which_o strain_n at_o a_o gnat_n and_o swallow_v a_o camel_n and_o again_o he_o say_v 19.16,17_o matth._n 19.16,17_o one_o come_v and_o say_v unto_o he_o good_a master_n what_o good_a thing_n shall_v i_o do_v that_o i_o may_v inherit_v eternal_a life_n and_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o he_o if_o thou_o will_v enter_v into_o life_n keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o again_o 10.25,26,27,28_o luke_n 10.25,26,27,28_o another_o come_v unto_o the_o lord_n say_v master_n what_o shall_v i_o do_v to_o inherit_v eternal_a life_n he_o say_v unto_o he_o what_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n how_o read_v thou_o and_o he_o answer_v say_v thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o strength_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o mind_n and_o thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o and_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o have_v answer_v right_a this_o do_v and_o thou_o shall_v live_v and_o st._n paul_n say_v 10.6,7,8,9,10,11_o rom._n 10.6,7,8,9,10,11_o the_o righteousness_n which_o be_v of_o faith_n speak_v on_o this_o wise_a say_v not_o in_o thy_o heart_n who_o shall_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n that_o be_v to_o bring_v christ_n down_o from_o above_o or_o who_o shall_v descend_v into_o the_o deep_a that_o be_v to_o bring_v up_o christ_n again_o from_o the_o dead_a but_o what_o say_v it_o the_o word_n be_v nigh_o thou_o even_o in_o thy_o mouth_n and_o in_o thy_o heart_n that_o be_v the_o word_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o preach_v that_o if_o thou_o shall_v confess_v with_o thy_o mouth_n the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o shall_v believe_v in_o thy_o heart_n that_o god_n have_v raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a thou_o shall_v be_v save_v for_o with_o the_o heart_n man_n believe_v unto_o righteousness_n and_o with_o the_o mouth_n confession_n be_v make_v unto_o salvation_n for_o the_o scripture_n say_v whosoever_o believe_v on_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a the_o which_o word_n of_o faith_n mention_v in_o the_o 8._o v._n comprehend_v all_o that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o gospel_n relate_v to_o man_n salvation_n wherein_o be_v declare_v christ_n come_v from_o heaven_n his_o rise_n again_o from_o the_o dead_a with_o the_o condition_n on_o which_o christ_n and_o salvation_n be_v offer_v the_o knowledge_n of_o which_o he_o say_v be_v in_o their_o mouth_n and_o in_o their_o heart_n it_o be_v that_o which_o he_o have_v preach_v to_o they_o and_o whereas_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 9_o v._n 10.9_o rom._n 10.9_o if_o thou_o shall_v confess_v with_o thy_o mouth_n the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o shall_v believe_v in_o thy_o heart_n that_o god_n have_v raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a thou_o shall_v be_v save_v now_o this_o verse_n as_o they_o have_v part_v the_o word_n be_v a_o contradiction_n to_o all_o the_o scripture_n but_o the_o word_n that_o go_v before_o and_o the_o verse_n that_o follow_v after_o explain_v the_o apostle_n meaning_n where_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 10._o v._o 10.10_o rom._n 10.10_o for_o with_o the_o heart_n man_n believe_v unto_o righteousness_n the_o which_o we_o no_o soon_o be_v convert_v but_o we_o resign_v up_o ourselves_o to_o he_o desire_v in_o all_o thing_n to_o walk_v suitable_o to_o he_o the_o which_o if_o we_o so_o do_v we_o may_v believe_v that_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n be_v impute_v to_o we_o for_o it_o be_v only_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o heart_n as_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o belief_n which_o will_v produce_v a_o holy_a life_n according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v say_v 11.12,14_o heb._n 11.12,14_o without_o holiness_n no_o man_n shall_v see_v the_o lord_n now_o what_o the_o apostle_n here_o say_v in_o the_o 9_o v._o be_v to_o the_o church_n that_o he_o have_v before_o instruct_v and_o of_o who_o he_o have_v have_v proof_n of_o their_o sincerity_n and_o therefore_o encourage_v they_o to_o go_v on_o in_o the_o open_a acknowledge_v and_o confess_v of_o the_o lord_n although_o they_o be_v but_o a_o few_o people_n among_o a_o multitude_n of_o heathen_n and_o that_o their_o faith_n may_v not_o flag_n as_o to_o god_n raise_v christ_n from_o the_o dead_a he_o let_v they_o understand_v it_o be_v a_o great_a point_n of_o their_o salvation_n according_a to_o what_o he_o say_v 15.14,16,17_o 1_o cor._n 15.14,16,17_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o rise_v then_o be_v our_o preach_v vain_a and_o your_o faith_n be_v also_o vain_a for_o if_o the_o dead_a rise_v not_o then_o be_v not_o christ_n raise_v and_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o raise_v your_o faith_n be_v vain_a you_o be_v yet_o in_o your_o sin_n by_o which_o we_o see_v it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o material_a point_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o st._n paul_n say_v 10.12,13,14_o rom._n 10.12,13,14_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o greek_a for_o the_o same_o lord_n over_o all_o be_v rich_a unto_o all_o that_o call_v upon_o he_o for_o whosoever_o shall_v call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v save_v how_o then_o shall_v they_o call_v on_o he_o in_o who_o they_o have_v not_o believe_v here_o we_o see_v in_o these_o verse_n he_o speak_v in_o general_a to_o all_o but_o in_o the_o 9_o v._n he_o speak_v to_o a_o particular_a people_n or_o person_n to_o who_o he_o write_v now_o in_o the_o 12._o v._n whereas_o he_o say_v there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o greek_a that_o be_v salvation_n be_v alike_o common_a to_o all_o that_o do_v alike_o call_v upon_o he_o and_o whereas_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 13._o v._n whosoever_o shall_v call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v save_v i_o hope_v that_o you_o do_v not_o here_o apprehend_v that_o it_o be_v only_o with_o a_o vocal_a voice_n that_o if_o they_o so_o call_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v no_o it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o heart_n that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o suitable_a frame_n of_o spirit_n whereby_o we_o may_v call_v upon_o god_n as_o be_v require_v for_o it_o be_v the_o tongue_n that_o express_v but_o the_o meaning_n or_o voice_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o the_o tongue_n be_v not_o the_o man_n but_o a_o small_a member_n of_o he_o and_o have_v we_o no_o tongue_n to_o express_v our_o desire_n yet_o the_o sincerity_n of_o our_o heart_n in_o our_o affection_n towards_o god_n and_o be_v sensible_a of_o our_o own_o unworthiness_n be_v that_o voice_n which_o the_o lord_n will_v hear_v and_o like_v unto_o this_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o malefactor_n that_o be_v crucify_v with_o christ_n who_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o own_o unworthiness_n and_o of_o christ_n righteousness_n call_v on_o the_o lord_n for_o mercy_n 23.40,41,42,43_o luk._n 23.40,41,42,43_o faith_n in_o he_o be_v strong_a when_o the_o lord_n be_v most_o afflict_v and_o eclipse_v which_o make_v his_o believe_v on_o he_o at_o that_o time_n more_o wonderful_a but_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n look_v in_o upon_o his_o heart_n he_o not_o before_o
the_o hearer_n of_o the_o law_n be_v justify_v before_o god_n but_o the_o doer_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v justify_v that_o be_v as_o i_o tell_v you_o they_o be_v upon_o their_o first_o conversion_n and_o resignation_n justify_v by_o their_o faith_n in_o christ_n but_o after_o we_o be_v convert_v and_o justify_v by_o faith_n then_o whilst_o we_o have_v life_n we_o must_v use_v our_o diligence_n to_o walk_v in_o obedience_n and_o to_o perfect_a holiness_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o here_o we_o see_v he_o acknowledge_v the_o moral_a law_n to_o the_o great_a height_n and_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o must_v be_v judge_v by_o it_o and_o the_o gospel_n 7.1_o 2_o cor._n 7.1_o for_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 16._o v._o in_o the_o day_n when_o god_n shall_v judge_v the_o secret_n of_o man_n by_o jesus_n christ_n according_a to_o my_o gospel_n therefore_o as_o st._n peter_n say_v 3.14_o 2_o pet._n 3.14_o we_o must_v be_v diligent_a that_o we_o may_v be_v find_v of_o he_o in_o peace_n without_o spot_n and_o blameless_a and_o the_o apostle_n say_v again_o 1.13,14,15_o 1_o pet._n 1.13,14,15_o wherefore_o gird_v up_o the_o loin_n of_o your_o mind_n be_v sober_a and_o hope_v to_o the_o end_n for_o the_o grace_n that_o be_v to_o be_v bring_v unto_o you_o at_o the_o revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o obedient_a child_n not_o fashion_v yourselves_o according_a to_o the_o former_a lust_n in_o your_o ignorance_n but_o as_o he_o which_o have_v call_v you_o be_v holy_a so_o be_v you_o holy_a in_o all_o manner_n of_o conversation_n that_o be_v endeavour_v to_o be_v holy_a in_o all_o your_o conversation_n and_o as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o heb._n 12.14_o heb._n 12.14_o follow_v peace_n with_o all_o man_n and_o holiness_n without_o which_o no_o man_n shall_v see_v the_o lord_n by_o which_o we_o see_v nothing_o but_o a_o close_o walk_v with_o christ_n will_v keep_v we_o in_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n for_o if_o we_o sin_v wilful_o after_o we_o have_v thus_o receive_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n i_o find_v no_o hope_n of_o mercy_n for_o the_o great_a light_n we_o sin_n against_o the_o great_a condemnation_n we_o fall_v under_o as_o witness_v when_o the_o lord_n be_v in_o the_o camp_n of_o israel_n the_o man_n that_o gather_v stick_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n be_v utter_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o lord_n 15.29,30,31,32,35_o rom._n 15.29,30,31,32,35_o because_o he_o despise_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n therefore_o be_v he_o cut_v off_o in_o his_o iniquity_n and_o be_v stone_v to_o death_n so_o also_o underneath_o the_o evident_a manifestation_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n we_o see_v in_o the_o act_n by_o ananias_n and_o saphira_n his_o wife_n 5.1,2,3,4,5_o act_n 5.1,2,3,4,5_o that_o have_v join_v themselves_o to_o the_o church_n and_o in_o that_o they_o hypocritical_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o apostle_n more_o devote_v to_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o church_n then_o real_o they_o be_v therefore_o st._n peter_n tell_v they_o they_o have_v not_o lie_v unto_o man_n but_o unto_o god_n for_o he_o say_v likewise_o while_o it_o remain_v be_v it_o not_o thy_o own_o and_o after_o it_o be_v sell_v be_v it_o not_o in_o thy_o own_o power_n why_o have_v thou_o conceive_v this_o in_o thy_o heart_n thou_o have_v not_o lie_v unto_o man_n but_o unto_o god_n and_o ananias_n hear_v these_o word_n fall_v down_o and_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n by_o which_o we_o see_v of_o what_o dreadful_a consequence_n it_o be_v for_o we_o to_o pretend_v to_o be_v more_o holy_a than_o we_o real_o be_v therefore_o let_v this_o be_v a_o warning_n to_o we_o to_o be_v better_a than_o we_o pretend_v to_o be_v for_o it_o be_v god_n that_o know_v the_o heart_n and_o tri_v the_o spirit_n of_o man_n and_o also_o god_n say_v 33.12_o ezek._n 33.12_o therefore_o thou_o son_n of_o man_n say_v unto_o the_o child_n of_o thy_o people_n the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o righteous_a shall_v not_o deliver_v he_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o transgression_n as_o for_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o wicked_a he_o shall_v not_o fall_v thereby_o in_o the_o day_n that_o he_o turn_v from_o his_o wickedness_n neither_o shall_v the_o righteous_a be_v able_a to_o live_v for_o his_o righteousness_n in_o the_o day_n that_o he_o sin_v and_o the_o apostle_n say_v 6.5,6_o heb._n 6.5,6_o that_o if_o they_o wilful_o sin_n after_o they_o have_v taste_v the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v they_o can_v be_v renew_v by_o repentance_n for_o if_o we_o be_v only_o of_o the_o outward_a church_n we_o fall_v short_a of_o salvation_n and_o must_v have_v our_o share_n in_o the_o threaten_a misery_n and_o if_o we_o defer_v repentance_n and_o check_v the_o good_a motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n we_o thereby_o lose_v the_o day_n of_o grace_n and_o so_o be_v leave_v of_o god_n and_o if_o we_o go_v to_o hear_v the_o word_n and_o do_v not_o benefit_v thereby_o we_o be_v like_o the_o earth_n which_o drink_v in_o the_o rain_n 6.3_o heb._n 6.3_o yet_o bear_v thorn_n and_o brier_n be_v reject_v and_o be_v nigh_o unto_o curse_v who_o end_n be_v to_o be_v burn_v and_o if_o we_o be_v wilful_o ignorant_a it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v only_o the_o fool_n hate_v knowledge_n 1.22_o pro._n 1.22_o and_o god_n say_v my_o people_n be_v destroy_v for_o lack_n of_o knowledge_n 4.6_o hosea_n 4.6_o and_o whereas_o the_o lord_n say_v 5.20,21,22,23,24_o john_n 5.20,21,22,23,24_o for_o the_o father_n love_v the_o son_n and_o show_v he_o all_o thing_n that_o himself_o do_v and_o he_o will_v show_v he_o great_a work_n than_o these_o that_o you_o may_v marvel_v for_o as_o the_o father_n raise_v up_o the_o dead_a and_o quicken_v they_o even_o so_o the_o son_n quicken_v who_o he_o will_n for_o the_o father_n judge_v no_o man_n but_o have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n to_o the_o son_n by_o this_o we_o may_v plain_o see_v that_o christ_n speak_v this_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v in_o which_o he_o will_v jduge_v the_o world_n for_o when_o he_o then_o come_v it_o be_v to_o teach_v and_o to_o suffer_v and_o now_o as_o he_o be_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n it_o be_v say_v he_o sit_v there_o as_o a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n but_o when_o he_o come_v again_o he_o be_v then_o our_o judge_n therefore_o this_o be_v speak_v for_o that_o time_n when_o all_o judgement_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o he_o the_o lord_n say_v that_o all_o man_n shall_v honour_v the_o son_n even_o as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n he_o that_o honour_v not_o the_o son_n honour_v not_o the_o father_n which_o have_v send_v he_o now_o the_o jew_n and_o turk_n honour_v he_o not_o as_o they_o do_v the_o father_n therefore_o speak_v for_o time_n to_o come_v and_o he_o say_v very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o he_o that_o hear_v my_o word_n and_o believe_v on_o he_o that_o send_v i_o have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o shall_v not_o come_v into_o condemnation_n but_o be_v pass_v from_o death_n unto_o life_n that_o be_v when_o the_o lord_n again_o come_v that_o they_o which_o he_o then_o find_v thus_o will_v have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o shall_v not_o come_v into_o condemnation_n but_o then_o will_v be_v pass_v from_o death_n unto_o life_n and_o he_o say_v 5.24,25,26,27,28,29_o john_n 5.24,25,26,27,28,29_o very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o the_o hour_n be_v come_v and_o now_o be_v when_o the_o dead_a shall_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o hear_v shall_v live_v for_o as_o the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o so_o have_v he_o give_v to_o the_o son_n to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o by_o all_o the_o forego_n word_n it_o do_v evident_o appear_v to_o be_v the_o first_o resurrection_n the_o which_o will_v be_v at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o here_o speak_v in_o the_o usual_a way_n of_o scripture_n speak_v in_o mention_v that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v as_o though_o it_o be_v already_o come_v now_o although_o the_o wicked_a be_v term_v to_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n yet_o in_o the_o forego_n word_n there_o be_v make_v no_o mention_n of_o they_o but_o of_o the_o judgement_n that_o be_v commit_v to_o christ_n neither_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n after_o his_o ascension_n say_v to_o call_v home_o any_o but_o st._n paul_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o give_v till_o after_o the_o people_n be_v bring_v home_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o his_o messenger_n in_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gospel_n therefore_o this_o must_v needs_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o first_o resurrection_n which_o will_v be_v when_o christ_n again_o come_v and_o the_o lord_n say_v 5.27,28,29_o joh._n 5.27,28,29_o and_o
be_v do_v to_o the_o figtree_n but_o also_o if_o you_o shall_v say_v unto_o this_o mountain_n be_v thou_o remove_v and_o be_v thou_o cast_v into_o the_o sea_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v 22._o and_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o you_o shall_v ask_v in_o prayer_n believe_v you_o shall_v receive_v this_o christ_n speak_v to_o his_o disciple_n unto_o who_o he_o afterward_o give_v as_o great_a power_n to_o as_o that_o of_o the_o remove_n of_o mountain_n when_o he_o send_v upon_o they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o power_n of_o work_a miracle_n and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o if_o they_o have_v say_v to_o the_o mountain_n be_v thou_o remove_v into_o the_o sea_n but_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v do_v as_o well_o as_o when_o elijah_n call_v for_o fire_n to_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n but_o these_o promise_n belong_v not_o to_o we_o but_o those_o that_o find_v they_o have_v power_n to_o do_v these_o miracle_n may_v believe_v they_o do_v belong_v to_o they_o now_o here_o be_v some_o difference_n between_o what_o be_v say_v in_o these_o verse_n and_o what_o be_v say_v in_o the_o former_a for_o there_o it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o shall_v say_v to_o this_o mountain_n be_v thou_o remove_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v but_o in_o these_o last_o verse_n it_o be_v say_v if_o you_o shall_v say_v to_o this_o mountain_n be_v you_o remove_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o in_o the_o former_a there_o shall_v be_v nothing_o impossible_a for_o they_o to_o do_v but_o in_o these_o whatsoever_o they_o shall_v ask_v believe_o they_o shall_v receive_v now_o as_o st._n paul_n say_v 1_o cor._n 13,2_o and_o though_o i_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n and_o understand_v all_o mystery_n and_o all_o knowledge_n and_o though_o i_o have_v all_o faith_n so_o that_o i_o can_v remove_v mountain_n and_o have_v no_o charity_n i_o be_o nothing_o 3._o although_o i_o bestow_v all_o my_o good_n to_o feed_v the_o poor_a and_o though_o i_o give_v my_o hody_n to_o be_v burn_v and_o have_v not_o charity_n it_o profit_v i_o nothing_o now_o these_o mountain_n that_o st._n paul_n here_o speak_v of_o do_v appear_v to_o be_v some_o inbred_a corruption_n which_o a_o man_n may_v find_v some_o inconvenience_n in_o and_o so_o for_o fear_n of_o hell_n he_o become_v terrify_v and_o therefore_o no_o long_o willing_a to_o live_v in_o they_o have_v all_o faith_n as_o to_o believe_v the_o whole_a reveal_v will_n of_o god_n in_o his_o word_n and_o therefore_o when_o he_o find_v that_o he_o in_o his_o own_o strength_n be_v not_o able_a to_o overcome_v they_o than_o he_o go_v to_o fetch_v strength_n from_o the_o the_o lord_n in_o make_v his_o address_n to_o he_o for_o his_o assistance_n and_o have_v thereby_o gain_v power_n to_o remove_v these_o mountain_n yet_o if_o his_o heart_n be_v not_o draw_v out_o in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n thereby_o he_o be_v still_o nothing_o for_o it_o be_v our_o love_n that_o god_n require_v and_o it_o be_v that_o which_o will_v launch_v with_o we_o into_o the_o world_n that_o be_v to_o come_v as_o to_o that_o word_n which_o in_o these_o new_a translation_n be_v term_v charity_n be_v in_o the_o old_a translation_n love_n as_o in_o the_o original_a for_o by_o love_n we_o extend_v ourselves_o to_o god_n as_o well_o as_o to_o our_o fellow_n creature_n which_o by_o charity_n we_o can_v do_v now_o as_o for_o those_o place_n of_o scripture_n where_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n say_v he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o or_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o christ_n shall_v be_v save_v be_v only_o in_o short_a to_o remember_v they_o of_o the_o lord_n be_v reveal_v will_n in_o his_o word_n which_o if_o they_o do_v so_o believe_v in_o the_o lord_n as_o to_o make_v his_o command_n and_o precept_n the_o rule_n of_o their_o life_n to_o live_v according_a thereunto_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v the_o which_o be_v a_o clear_a demonstration_n that_o the_o lord_n have_v by_o himself_o and_o his_o apostle_n leave_v we_o instruction_n which_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v by_o which_o salvation_n be_v attainable_a the_o which_o st._n paul_n word_n do_v far_o clear_v 1_o cor._n 15.1_o moreover_o brethren_n i_o declare_v unto_o you_o the_o gospel_n which_o i_o preach_v unto_o you_o which_o also_o you_o have_v receive_v and_o wherein_o you_o stand_v by_o which_o also_o you_o be_v save_v if_o you_o keep_v in_o memory_n what_o i_o preach_v unto_o you_o unless_o you_o have_v believe_v in_o vain_a and_o st._n peter_n faith_n 1_o pet._n 1.21,22_o who_o by_o he_o do_v believe_v in_o god_n that_o raise_v he_o up_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o give_v he_o glory_n that_o your_o faith_n and_o hope_n may_v be_v in_o god_n see_v you_o have_v purify_v your_o soul_n in_o obey_v the_o truth_n through_o the_o spirit_n see_v that_o you_o love_v one_o another_o with_o a_o pure_a heart_n fervent_o we_o here_o see_v this_o faith_n purify_v the_o soul_n and_o extend_v itself_o in_o love_n for_o god_n be_v love_n and_o st._n peter_n say_v in_o act_n 15.9_o that_o god_n put_v no_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o they_o purify_n their_o heart_n by_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o see_v if_o we_o have_v a_o save_a faith_n it_o will_v work_n the_o same_o effect_n in_o we_o this_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o election_n 〈…〉_o and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o those_o that_o be_v christ_n stand_v witness_n through_o the_o world_n of_o who_o the_o lord_n faith_n in_o john_n 10.27,28_o that_o none_o can_v pluck_v they_o out_o of_o his_o hand_n concern_v the_o indwel_n of_o christ_n in_o we_o now_o as_o to_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o and_o as_o to_o the_o indwel_n of_o the_o spirit_n with_o we_o i_o shall_v here_o set_v down_o what_o st._n paul_n say_v 2_o cor._n 13.5_o examine_v yourselves_o whether_o you_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n prove_v your_o own_o self_n how_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o you_o except_o you_o be_v roprobates_n now_o we_o be_v to_o take_v notice_n what_o he_o here_o say_v in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o verse_n the_o which_o be_v that_o we_o shall_v examine_v ourselves_o whether_o we_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v prove_v ourselves_o as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o be_v the_o way_n to_o know_v whether_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o or_o no_o and_o in_o the_o ephesian_n he_o tell_v we_o plain_o how_o it_o be_v christ_n be_v say_v to_o dwell_v in_o we_o where_o he_o say_v in_o ephes_n 3.17_o that_o christ_n may_v dwell_v in_o your_o heart_n by_o faith_n that_o you_o be_v root_v and_o ground_v in_o love_n by_o which_o we_o may_v clear_o see_v it_o be_v by_o faith_n and_o love_n that_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o therefore_o st._n paul_n say_v in_o 1_o cor._n 16.22_o if_o any_o man_n love_v not_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n let_v he_o he_o be_v anathema_n maranatha_n the_o which_o be_v let_v he_o be_v accurse_v and_o if_o accurse_a besure_n he_o be_v a_o reprobate_n now_o if_o the_o indwelling_n of_o christ_n in_o we_o be_v by_o faith_n and_o love_n then_o the_o best_a way_n to_o know_v whether_o christ_n have_v such_o a_o indwel_n in_o we_o or_o no_o be_v by_o our_o obedience_n to_o he_o in_o our_o close_a walk_v with_o he_o according_a to_o his_o reveal_v will_n in_o his_o word_n and_o if_o so_o we_o shall_v have_v the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o comforter_n more_o or_o less_o bear_v witness_n with_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o st._n paul_n here_o speak_v of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n where_o he_o say_v rom._n 8.5_o to_o the_o 10._o v._n they_o that_o be_v after_o the_o flesh_n do_v mind_n the_o thing_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o they_o that_o be_v after_o the_o spirit_n the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o to_o be_v carnal_o mind_v be_v death_n but_o to_o be_v spiritual_o mind_v be_v life_n and_o peace_n because_o the_o carnal_a mind_n be_v entire_o against_o god_n for_o it_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n neither_o indeed_o can_v be_v so_o then_o they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n can_v please_v god_n but_o you_o be_v not_o in_o the_o flesh_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o now_o if_o any_o man_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v none_o of_o he_o and_o if_o christ_n be_v in_o you_o the_o body_n be_v dead_a because_o of_o sin_n but_o the_o spirit_n be_v life_n because_o of_o righteousness_n we_o see_v that_o the_o spirit_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v no_o other_o but_o a_o spirit_n of_o complaiscency_n to_o god_n and_o christ_n in_o that_o their_o will_n be_v bring_v over_o into_o the_o love_n
i_o and_o see_v my_o work_n forty_o year_n 10._o wherefore_o i_o be_v grieve_v with_o that_o generation_n and_o say_v they_o do_v always_o err_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o they_o have_v not_o know_v my_o way_n 11._o so_o i_o swear_v in_o my_o wrath_n they_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o my_o rest_n by_o these_o word_n we_o again_o see_v when_o it_o be_v that_o the_o lord_n swear_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o his_o rest_n that_o it_o be_v when_o they_o sin_v in_o the_o wilderness_n at_o which_o time_n they_o provoke_v he_o to_o wrath_n whereof_o also_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o 17._o v._n but_o with_o who_o be_v he_o grieve_v forty_o year_n be_v it_o not_o with_o they_o that_o have_v sin_v who_o carcase_n fall_v in_o the_o wilderness_n 18._o and_o to_o who_o swear_v he_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o his_o rest_n but_o to_o they_o that_o believe_v not_o by_o which_o we_o may_v see_v that_o some_o of_o they_o be_v exclude_v the_o promise_n above_o thirty_o year_n before_o their_o natural_a life_n be_v end_v and_o st._n paul_n speak_v of_o david_n rom._n 11.9_o where_o he_o say_v let_v their_o table_n be_v make_v a_o snare_n and_o a_o trap_n and_o a_o stumble_a block_n and_o a_o recompense_n unto_o they_o 10._o let_v their_o eye_n be_v darken_v that_o they_o may_v not_o see_v and_o how_o down_o their_o back_n always_o now_o it_o may_v be_v say_v wherefore_o do_v david_n curse_v they_o to_o which_o i_o answer_v david_n be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n and_o a_o prophet_n and_o by_o the_o prophetical_a spirit_n he_o foresee_v the_o suffering_n of_o his_o bless_a lord_n and_o that_o it_o will_v be_v the_o jew_n from_o who_o he_o shall_v receive_v his_o affliction_n and_o therefore_o as_o his_o own_o affliction_n he_o do_v express_v they_o that_o be_v do_v to_o the_o almighty_a lord_n which_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o he_o thus_o curse_v those_o that_o shall_v be_v the_o afflictor_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n as_o in_o psal_n 69.6,9,28_o v._o wherein_o david_n intermix_v his_o suffering_n with_o those_o of_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n wherein_o it_o do_v seem_v in_o a_o more_o especial_a manner_n to_o signify_v the_o suffering_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n and_o as_o to_o what_o relate_v to_o his_o enemy_n for_o in_o the_o 21._o v._n he_o say_v they_o give_v i_o also_o gall_n for_o my_o meat_n and_o in_o my_o thirst_n they_o give_v i_o vinegar_n to_o drink_v which_o thing_n be_v do_v to_o the_o lord_n christ_n as_o in_o mark_n 15.23_o have_v before_o speak_v of_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o close_v with_o this_o which_o be_v do_v to_o he_o on_o the_o cross_n after_o which_o david_n proceed_v to_o curse_v they_o as_o be_v before_o set_v down_o and_o st._n paul_n say_v rom._n 11.11_o i_o say_v then_o have_v they_o stumble_v that_o they_o shall_v fall_v god_n forbid_v but_o rather_o through_o the_o fall_n salvation_n be_v come_v to_o the_o gentile_n for_o to_o provoke_v they_o to_o jealousy_n here_o st._n paul_n start_v the_o question_n in_o that_o he_o say_v have_v they_o stumble_v because_o they_o shall_v fall_v he_o fear_v lest_o they_o shall_v fall_v under_o that_o dangerous_a mistake_n to_o which_o he_o answer_v himself_o god_n forbid_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v it_o be_v not_o so_o and_o have_v a_o care_v you_o think_v not_o so_o and_o also_o we_o see_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_v full_o make_v it_o appear_v to_o the_o contrary_a in_o show_v we_o how_o they_o first_o fall_v and_o after_o which_o god_n say_v he_o will_v lay_v in_o zion_n a_o stumble_a stone_n so_o as_o that_o which_o shall_v have_v be_v for_o their_o welfare_n become_v a_o trap._n at_o which_o stone_n they_o stumble_v as_o they_o then_o miss_v of_o the_o salvation_n purchase_v by_o he_o and_o christ_n say_v matt._n 21.44_o that_o whosoever_o shall_v fall_v on_o this_o stone_n shall_v be_v break_v but_o on_o whosoever_o it_o shall_v fall_v it_o will_v grind_v he_o to_o powder_n now_o it_o be_v the_o jew_n that_o fall_v upon_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v this_o stone_n but_o they_o do_v it_o ignorant_o through_o unbelief_n and_o their_o ignorance_n be_v occasion_v by_o their_o sinfulness_n and_o for_o want_v of_o a_o desire_n to_o he_o when_o they_o hear_v of_o his_o come_n the_o which_o have_v they_o have_v a_o longing_n after_o he_o the_o extent_n of_o his_o mercy_n will_v have_v be_v large_a among_o they_o but_o it_o be_v say_v matt._n 2.23_o when_o the_o wise_a man_n come_v to_o inquire_v say_v where_o be_v he_o that_o be_v bear_v king_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o we_o have_v see_v his_o star_n in_o the_o east_n and_o be_v come_v to_o worship_n he_o 3._o when_o herod_n the_o king_n have_v hear_v these_o thing_n he_o be_v trouble_v and_o all_o jerusalem_n with_o he_o we_o here_o see_v that_o they_o desire_v not_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o christ_n do_v not_o manifest_v himself_o unto_o they_o so_o if_o we_o desire_v not_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n it_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o share_n in_o he_o and_o to_o desire_v his_o come_n without_o prepare_v our_o heart_n for_o he_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o mercy_n for_o we_o but_o as_o the_o jew_n fall_v on_o that_o stone_n and_o so_o be_v break_v to_o piece_n so_o when_o christ_n again_o come_v who_o be_v this_o stone_n it_o be_v the_o relapsed_a christian_n that_o he_o will_v fall_v upon_o so_o as_o to_o grind_v they_o to_o powder_n now_o whereas_o st._n peter_n say_v of_o the_o wicked_a c._n 2._o v._n 11,12_o whereas_o angel_n be_v great_a in_o power_n and_o might_n bring_v not_o a_o rail_a accusation_n against_o they_o before_o the_o lord_n but_o these_o as_o natural_a brute_n beast_n make_v to_o be_v take_v and_o destroy_v speak_v evil_a of_o the_o thing_n they_o understand_v not_o and_o shall_v utter_o perish_v in_o their_o own_o corruption_n and_o shall_v receive_v the_o reward_n of_o unrighteousness_n as_o they_o that_o count_v pleasure_n to_o riot_n in_o the_o day_n time_n spot_n they_o be_v and_o blemish_n sport_v themselves_o with_o their_o own_o deceive_n that_o be_v as_o natural_a brute_n beast_n which_o be_v make_v to_o be_v take_v and_o destroy_v understand_v not_o how_o to_o give_v honour_n neither_o to_o god_n nor_o man_n and_o so_o these_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o thing_n they_o understand_v not_o but_o be_v sport_v themselves_o with_o their_o own_o deceive_v whereby_o they_o come_v to_o be_v destroy_v and_o whereas_o st._n judas_n say_v 4._o v._o for_o there_o be_v certain_a man_n creep_v in_o unaware_o who_o be_v before_o of_o old_a ordain_v to_o this_o condemnation_n ungodly_a man_n turn_v the_o grace_n of_o our_o god_n into_o lasciviousness_n and_o deny_v the_o only_a lord_n god_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n now_o whereas_o he_o say_v they_o be_v before_o of_o old_a ordain_v to_o this_o condemnation_n that_o be_v there_o be_v in_o old_a time_n a_o decree_n ordain_v that_o such_o and_o the_o like_a offender_n shall_v fall_v under_o the_o condemnation_n which_o then_o be_v determine_v for_o they_o but_o not_o that_o there_o be_v before_o ordain_v of_o god_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o and_o the_o like_a offender_n on_o purpose_n because_o that_o they_o shall_v fall_v under_o the_o condemnation_n that_o be_v of_o old_a determine_v no_o but_o as_o our_o king_n know_v that_o there_o will_v be_v offender_n therefore_o make_v law_n for_o their_o punishment_n and_o whereas_o st._n paul_n say_v rom._n 9.22,23,24_o that_o god_n may_v make_v know_v the_o riches_n of_o his_o glory_n on_o the_o vessel_n of_o mercy_n which_o he_o have_v afore_o prepare_v unto_o glory_n 24._o even_o we_o who_o he_o have_v call_v not_o of_o the_o jew_n only_o but_o also_o of_o the_o gentile_n whereas_o st._n paul_n say_v that_o god_n may_v make_v know_v the_o riches_n of_o his_o glory_n on_o the_o vessel_n of_o mercy_n by_o which_o word_n we_o may_v plain_o understand_v that_o then_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n be_v not_o manifest_v on_o they_o and_o also_o st._n paul_n in_o another_o place_n say_v that_o they_o be_v make_v the_o off-scouring_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v vessel_n of_o mercy_n which_o god_n have_v prepare_v unto_o glory_n he●e_v he_o let_v we_o understand_v that_o it_o be_v god_n that_o fit_v the_o saint_n for_o glory_n but_o in_o the_o forego_n word_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o do_v not_o say_v it_o be_v god_n that_o fit_v man_n for_o destruction_n and_o god_n himself_o say_v thy_o destruction_n be_v of_o thyself_o o_o man._n and_o that_o he_o delight_v not_o in_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v which_o he_o have_v afore_o prepare_v unto_o
their_o eye_n shall_v consume_v away_o in_o their_o hole_n and_o their_o tongue_n shall_v consume_v away_o in_o their_o mouth_n of_o certain_a this_o be_v the_o battle_n that_o be_v to_o be_v fight_v after_o satan_n be_v loose_v for_o it_o be_v after_o christ_n appear_v upon_o mount_n olivet_n after_o the_o mountain_n cleave_v in_o the_o midst_n for_o a_o receptacle_n for_o they_o that_o be_v save_v whilst_o the_o earth_n be_v renew_v after_o the_o wicked_a be_v destroy_v and_o after_o jerusalem_n be_v again_o build_v after_o which_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o 11_o verse_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o utter_a destruction_n but_o jerusalem_n shall_v be_v safe_o inhabit_v because_o none_o shall_v make_v any_o attempt_n against_o they_o till_o after_o the_o thousand_o year_n after_o which_o gog_n and_o magog_n who_o the_o devil_n will_v gather_v together_o will_v come_v up_o against_o jerusalem_n who_o god_n will_v destroy_v as_o in_o the_o 38th_o chapter_n of_o ezekiel_n and_o in_o rev._n 20.9,10_o and_o they_o that_o escape_v the_o fire_n and_o hail_n that_o come_v from_o heaven_n shall_v pine_v away_o as_o in_o zachariah_n now_o have_v full_o prove_v how_o some_o become_v to_o be_v more_o estrange_v from_o god_n than_o other_o some_o the_o which_o be_v as_o st._n paul_n say_v of_o israel_n that_o it_o happen_v to_o they_o so_o may_v it_o be_v say_v of_o these_o that_o it_o happen_v unto_o they_o first_o through_o the_o subtle_a insinuation_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o they_o and_o second_o by_o their_o own_o wilful_a miscarriage_n when_o they_o be_v again_o restore_v to_o mercy_n by_o christ_n and_o again_o renew_v in_o he_o and_o in_o that_o israel_n will_v have_v the_o pre-eminence_n it_o also_o be_v through_o the_o faithfulness_n of_o abraham_n in_o his_o service_n and_o in_o the_o patient_a wait_a for_o his_o promise_n after_o the_o lord_n have_v choose_v he_o and_o also_o in_o that_o abraham_n do_v offer_v up_o his_o only_a son_n isaac_n for_o the_o do_v of_o which_o the_o lord_n do_v enlarge_v his_o promise_a blessing_n to_o abraham_n which_o be_v that_o in_o he_o and_o his_o seed_n all_o the_o family_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v bless_v gen._n 22.17_o and_o have_v israel_n walk_v in_o the_o step_n of_o abraham_n according_a to_o the_o capacity_n god_n have_v put_v they_o in_o their_o kingdom_n have_v never_o be_v destroy_v isa_n 48.18,19_o jer._n 25.5_o but_o god_n foresee_v they_o will_v be_v want_v to_o themselves_o in_o not_o keep_v his_o covenant_n therefore_o their_o destruction_n be_v foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o also_o because_o david_n patient_o wait_v upon_o the_o lord_n till_o it_o be_v his_o time_n to_o bring_v he_o to_o the_o kingdom_n bear_v all_o his_o affliction_n till_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n time_n to_o bring_v he_o out_o of_o they_o and_o when_o he_o be_v on_o the_o throne_n he_o persist_v in_o his_o desire_n of_o advance_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n therefore_o god_n make_v that_o great_a promise_n to_o he_o and_o his_o seed_n as_o in_o 2_o sam._n 7.14_o now_o god_n likewise_o choose_v jeroboam_n and_o jehu_n to_o be_v king_n but_o they_o act_v contrary_a to_o his_o command_n therefore_o they_o be_v accurse_v of_o he_o and_o also_o they_o that_o suffer_v for_o god_n in_o well_o do_v shall_v in_o time_n to_o come_v receive_v the_o great_a glory_n as_o those_o that_o have_v be_v most_o wicked_a shall_v receive_v the_o great_a punishment_n and_o whereas_o god_n say_v ezek._n 33.13_o when_o i_o shall_v say_v to_o the_o righteous_a that_o he_o shall_v sure_o live_v if_o he_o trust_v to_o his_o own_o righteousness_n and_o commit_v iniquity_n all_o his_o righteousness_n shall_v not_o be_v remember_v but_o for_o his_o iniquity_n that_o he_o have_v commit_v he_o shall_v die_v for_o it_o now_o god_n here_o say_v when_o he_o shall_v say_v to_o the_o righteous_a that_o he_o shall_v sure_o live_v yet_o if_o he_o upon_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n for_o life_n and_o for_o his_o past_a obedience_n do_v take_v a_o liberty_n to_o do_v iniquity_n his_o past_a righteousness_n shall_v not_o be_v remember_v but_o for_o his_o iniquity_n he_o shall_v die_v and_o so_o be_v our_o calling_n and_o election_n to_o life_n and_o salvation_n that_o be_v absolute_o promise_v to_o we_o by_o god_n yet_o if_o we_o be_v want_v to_o ourselves_o they_o prove_v of_o no_o effect_n to_o we_o and_o the_o case_n stand_v so_o with_o the_o wicked_a for_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o the_o 14._o v._n again_o when_o i_o say_v unto_o the_o wicked_a thou_o shall_v sure_o die_v if_o he_o turn_v from_o his_o sin_n and_o do_v that_o which_o be_v lawful_a and_o right_a 15._o v._n if_o the_o wicked_a restore_fw-mi the_o pledge_n give_v again_o that_o he_o have_v rob_v walk_v in_o statute_n of_o life_n without_o commit_v iniquity_n he_o shall_v sure_o live_v he_o shall_v not_o die_v that_o be_v without_o wilful_o commit_v iniquity_n by_o this_o we_o also_o see_v that_o if_o god_n do_v say_v to_o the_o wicked_a thou_o shall_v sure_o die_v yet_o that_o threaten_v be_v not_o of_o force_n no_o long_o than_o the_o man_n remain_v sinful_a of_o which_o the_o lord_n in_o jer._n 36.3_o it_o may_v be_v that_o the_o house_n of_o judah_n will_v hear_v all_o the_o evil_n which_o i_o purpose_v to_o do_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o may_v return_v every_o man_n from_o his_o evil_a way_n that_o i_o may_v forgive_v their_o iniquity_n and_o their_o sin_n and_o also_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o jer._n 25._o from_o the_o 3._o to_o the_o 9_o v._n but_o as_o for_o those_o sinner_n who_o by_o their_o continue_a custom_n in_o sin_n god_n have_v leave_v to_o hardness_n of_o heart_n and_o blindness_n of_o mind_n they_o can_v come_v to_o amendment_n of_o life_n and_o god_n say_v in_o ezek._n 18.21_o to_o the_o 31._o v._n but_o if_o the_o wicked_a will_v turn_v from_o all_o his_o sin_n that_o he_o have_v commit_v and_o keep_v all_o my_o statute_n and_o do_v that_o which_o be_v lawful_a and_o right_a he_o shall_v sure_o live_v he_o shall_v not_o die_v 23._o have_v i_o any_o pleasure_n at_o all_o that_o the_o wicked_a shall_v die_v say_v the_o lord_n god_n and_o not_o that_o he_o shall_v return_v from_o his_o way_n and_o live_v now_o while_o the_o lord_n call_v to_o a_o sinner_n to_o repentance_n there_o be_v power_n in_o the_o sinner_n to_o turn_v from_o his_o way_n and_o to_o seek_v to_o god_n that_o he_o may_v live_v 25._o v._n yet_o you_o say_v the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o equal_a here_o now_o o_o house_n of_o israel_n be_v not_o my_o way_n equal_a be_v not_o your_o way_n unequal_a 30._o v._n therefore_o i_o will_v judge_v you_o o_o house_n of_o israel_n every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o way_n say_v the_o lord_n god_n repent_v and_o turn_v yourselves_o from_o all_o your_o transgression_n so_o iniquity_n shall_v not_o be_v your_o ruin_n 33._o v._n cast_v away_o from_o you_o all_o your_o transgression_n whereby_o you_o have_v transgress_v and_o make_v you_o a_o new_a heart_n and_o a_o new_a spirit_n for_o why_o will_v you_o die_v o_o house_n of_o israel_n 32._o v._n for_o i_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o the_o death_n of_o he_o that_o die_v say_v the_o lord_n wherefore_o turn_v yourselves_o and_o live_v you_o now_o whilst_o god_n call_v to_o a_o people_n to_o come_v to_o repentance_n there_o be_v a_o door_n open_a to_o they_o for_o mercy_n and_o then_o they_o be_v not_o leave_v of_o god_n to_o hardness_n of_o heart_n and_o blind_a ness_n of_o mind_n so_o as_o if_o they_o do_v but_o use_v their_o utmost_a diligence_n in_o endeavour_v to_o forsake_v their_o sin_n and_o go_v to_o god_n by_o prayer_n they_o shall_v not_o want_v his_o assistance_n now_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n say_v eph._n 4.28_o let_v he_o that_o steal_v steal_v no_o more_o so_o for_o all_o other_o sin_n there_o remain_v a_o power_n in_o we_o to_o withstand_v and_o make_v resistance_n against_o till_o such_o time_n that_o through_o the_o often_o refuse_v obedience_n to_o his_o word_n and_o resist_v the_o good_a motion_n of_o his_o spirit_n god_n leave_v they_o to_o hardness_n of_o heart_n and_o blindness_n of_o mind_n now_o whilst_o the_o door_n of_o mercy_n be_v open_a we_o may_v cast_v away_o all_o our_o transgression_n that_o be_v take_v up_o resolution_n against_o they_o and_o continual_o beg_v of_o god_n for_o his_o assistance_n in_o our_o performance_n and_o cant._n 1.4_o cry_v out_o with_o the_o church_n lord_n draw_v i_o we_o will_v run_v after_o thou_o god_n have_v leave_v we_o a_o sure_a rule_n if_o we_o will_v take_v to_o the_o mean_n therefore_o let_v we_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n and_o keep_v to_o our_o constant_a duty_n in_o pray_v and_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v
then_o farther_o confirm_v the_o blessing_n to_o he_o as_o in_o gen._n 22._o and_o at_o the_o time_n appoint_v according_a to_o his_o promise_n god_n do_v appear_v to_o deliver_v his_o seed_n out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n and_o when_o he_o bring_v they_o into_o the_o wilderness_n he_o be_v say_v to_o prove_v they_o there_o and_o god_n keep_v moses_n in_o the_o mount_n with_o he_o but_o forty_o day_n and_o israel_n be_v all_o fall_v off_o to_o idolatry_n for_o which_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v destroy_v they_o all_o as_o in_o exod._n 32.10,11,12_o where_o god_n say_v now_o therefore_o let_v i_o alone_o that_o my_o wrath_n may_v wax_v hot_a against_o they_o and_o that_o i_o may_v consume_v they_o and_o i_o will_v make_v of_o thou_o a_o great_a nation_n but_o through_o the_o prayer_n of_o moses_n as_o in_o the_o 11._o v._o the_o fierce_a anger_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v assuage_v the_o which_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o absolute_a election_n at_o that_o time_n but_o rather_o from_o that_o time_n god_n may_v give_v christ_n a_o certain_a number_n who_o name_n may_v then_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v as_o a_o stand_a witness_n through_o this_o world_n if_o in_o case_n the_o devil_n shall_v at_o any_o time_n draw_v off_o the_o rest_n yet_o still_o there_o shall_v remain_v a_o stand_a witness_n the_o which_o shall_v own_o the_o truth_n by_o which_o mean_n those_o that_o do_v desire_v the_o way_n of_o holiness_n may_v be_v recover_v out_o of_o darkness_n again_o by_o come_v to_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o follow_v their_o example_n now_o st._n stephen_n say_v in_o act_n 7.34_o that_o it_o be_v christ_n that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o israel_n then_o be_v choose_v for_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v it_o do_v thereby_o full_o appear_v that_o their_o name_n be_v then_o put_v into_o the_o book_n of_o life_n who_o shall_v be_v a_o stand_a witness_n through_o the_o world_n and_o so_o secure_v in_o christ_n as_o they_o shall_v not_o fall_v away_o of_o who_o st._n paul_n speak_v in_o the_o roman_n after_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o wilful_a miscarriage_n of_o israel_n who_o god_n have_v put_v into_o a_o capacity_n of_o obedience_n as_o in_o rom._n 10.21_o but_o to_o israel_n he_o say_v all_o the_o day_n long_o i_o have_v stretch_v forth_o my_o hand_n unto_o a_o disobedient_a and_o gainsay_v people_n but_o he_o afterward_o speak_v of_o the_o special_a elect_n he_o say_v rom._n 11.2_o god_n have_v not_o cast_v away_o his_o people_n which_o he_o foreknow_v that_o be_v foreknow_v of_o the_o church_n by_o their_o close_a walk_v with_o he_o and_o also_o in_o especial_a manner_n he_o do_v here_o mean_a the_o very_a elect_n who_o name_n be_v write_v in_o heaven_n from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n of_o who_o he_o say_v in_o rom._n 11.5_o even_o so_o then_o at_o this_o present_a time_n also_o there_o be_v a_o remnant_n according_a to_o the_o election_n of_o grace_n now_o in_o the_o forego_n verse_n he_o there_o tell_v they_o that_o god_n reserve_v to_o himself_o seven_o thousand_o who_o have_v not_o bow_v the_o knee_n to_o the_o image_n of_o baal_n so_o as_o there_o be_v then_o so_o there_o be_v when_o christ_n come_v a_o number_n according_a to_o the_o election_n of_o grace_n the_o which_o be_v as_o a_o gift_n from_o the_o father_n to_o christ_n and_o of_o these_o christ_n speak_v in_o john_n 10.27,28,29,30_o my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o i_o know_v they_o and_o they_o follow_v i_o and_o i_o give_v unto_o they_o eternal_a life_n and_o they_o shall_v never_o perish_v neither_o shall_v any_o pluck_v they_o out_o of_o my_o hand_n my_o father_n which_o give_v they_o i_o be_v great_a than_o all_o and_o none_o be_v able_a to_o pluck_v they_o out_o of_o my_o father_n hand_n i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o here_o we_o see_v christ_n do_v own_o these_o as_o a_o gift_n from_o the_o father_n and_o that_o they_o be_v so_o absolute_o give_v as_o they_o can_v never_o fall_v away_o now_o of_o his_o other_o sheep_n the_o lord_n speak_v after_o another_o manner_n to_o let_v they_o know_v they_o stand_v not_o so_o secure_o for_o he_o say_v john_n 15.2,5,6,9,10,12,14_o every_o branch_n in_o i_o that_o bear_v not_o fruit_n he_o take_v away_o and_o he_o say_v i_o be_o the_o vine_n you_o be_v the_o branch_n 〈◊〉_d he_o that_o abide_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o the_o same_o bring_v forth_o much_o fruit_n for_o without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o 6._o if_o a_o man_n abide_v not_o in_o i_o he_o be_v cast_v forth_o as_o a_o branch_n and_o be_v wither_v and_o man_n gather_v they_o and_o cast_v they_o into_o the_o fire_n and_o they_o be_v burn_v 9_o as_o the_o father_n have_v love_v i_o so_o have_v i_o love_v you_o continue_v you_o in_o my_o love_n 10_o if_o you_o keep_v my_o commandment_n you_o shall_v abide_v in_o my_o love_n even_o as_o i_o keep_v my_o father_n commandment_n and_o abide_v in_o his_o love_n 12._o this_o be_v my_o commandment_n that_o you_o love_v one_o another_o as_o i_o have_v love_v you_o 14._o you_o be_v my_o friend_n if_o you_o do_v whatsoever_o i_o command_v you_o here_o we_o see_v our_o stand_n be_v but_o upon_o condition_n and_o the_o condition_n be_v the_o continuance_n in_o our_o obedience_n the_o which_o if_o we_o do_v not_o perfist_n in_o though_o we_o be_v ingraft_v into_o christ_n we_o shall_v be_v break_v off_o and_o cast_v into_o the_o fire_n and_o although_o we_o be_v in_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n yet_o we_o may_v through_o our_o own_o default_n not_o continue_v in_o it_o whilst_o the_o other_o sheep_n be_v so_o absolute_o fix_v in_o christ_n that_o they_o can_v fall_v away_o and_o in_o john_n 6.35,37_o and_o jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n he_o that_o come_v to_o i_o shall_v never_o hunger_n and_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o i_o shall_v never_o thirst_v this_o include_v their_o continuance_n in_o believe_v the_o which_o belief_n be_v a_o practical_a belief_n as_o i_o have_v elsewhere_o prove_v where_o i_o have_v speak_v of_o it_o and_o christ_n say_v john_n 6.37_o all_o that_o the_o father_n give_v i_o shall_v come_v to_o i_o and_o he_o that_o come_v to_o i_o i_o will_v in_o no_o wise_a cast_v out_o now_o this_o be_v speak_v to_o the_o jew_n that_o believe_v not_o therefore_o christ_n tell_v they_o that_o all_o that_o the_o father_n have_v give_v he_o shall_v come_v to_o he_o because_o from_o they_o be_v a_o certain_a number_n of_o the_o special_a elect_n and_o christ_n encourage_v all_o to_o come_v to_o he_o for_o he_o say_v he_o that_o come_v to_o he_o he_o will_v in_o no_o wise_a cast_v out_o so_o as_o none_o need_v fear_v be_v leave_v of_o god_n if_o they_o do_v not_o first_o forsake_v he_o and_o that_o we_o may_v not_o forsake_v he_o let_v we_o never_o trust_v ourselves_o with_o ourselves_o but_o continual_o beg_v strength_n and_o grace_n of_o he_o whereby_o we_o may_v be_v enable_v to_o live_v unto_o he_o and_o if_o we_o so_o do_v we_o shall_v find_v a_o continual_a support_n from_o he_o and_o to_o be_v sure_a none_o of_o the_o jew_n be_v leave_v of_o god_n to_o blindness_n of_o mind_n that_o have_v in_o sincerity_n live_v in_o obedience_n but_o the_o blindness_n fall_v on_o they_o that_o have_v leaf_n only_o that_o be_v a_o outward_a show_n of_o godliness_n but_o deny_v the_o power_n thereof_o act_v 13.26_o and_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o john_n 6.39,40_o and_o this_o be_v the_o father_n will_n which_o send_v i_o that_o of_o all_o which_o he_o have_v give_v i_o i_o shall_v lose_v nothing_o but_o shall_v raise_v it_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n this_o also_o include_v the_o special_a elect_n and_o by_o the_o last_o day_n be_v mean_v the_o last_o day_n of_o this_o world_n but_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o 40_o v._o and_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o he_o that_o sen●_n i_o that_o every_o one_o which_o see_v the_o son_n and_o believe_v on_o he_o may_v have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n here_o this_o include_v all_o believer_n show_v that_o if_o they_o do_v believe_v it_o be_v then_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o they_o shall_v so_o continue_v that_o they_o may_v have_v everlasting_a life_n by_o which_o it_o be_v very_o clear_a that_o god_n do_v not_o withdraw_v from_o any_o that_o believe_v because_o that_o he_o will_v damn_v they_o but_o it_o be_v they_o first_o forsake_v he_o and_o so_o fall_v away_o for_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n our_o continuance_n in_o
the_o first_o book_n a_o clear_a and_o brief_a explanation_n upon_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o second_o book_n prove_v the_o near_a approach_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o time_n the_o three_o book_n a_o rehearsal_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o moses_n with_o his_o then_o prophesy_v of_o the_o fire_v the_o mountain_n also_o prove_v the_o root_n of_o gall_n and_o wormwood_n and_o the_o root_n of_o bitterness_n to_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o the_o four_o book_n the_o figurative_a speech_n by_o which_o god_n have_v veil_v the_o secret_n contain_v in_o his_o word_n until_o the_o time_n of_o the_o end_n which_o be_v the_o time_n determine_v by_o the_o lord_n they_o shall_v be_v reveal_v dan._n 12.4.7_o zech._n 14.7_o the_o five_o book_n the_o christian_a belief_n show_v what_o a_o christian_a ought_v to_o believe_v and_o how_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n must_v be_v we_o if_o we_o be_v he_o the_o six_o book_n prove_v three_o world_n and_o three_o foundation_n the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o tree_n of_o life_n and_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil._n the_o battle_n of_o gog_n and_o magog_n the_o seven_o book_n a_o short_a collection_n of_o all_o the_o head_n of_o the_o chief_a point_n and_o mistake_v place_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o truth_n may_v the_o better_o be_v retain_v in_o our_o memory_n by_o m._n marsin_n london_n print_v and_o sell_v by_o edward_n pool_n at_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o half_a moon_n under_o the_o royal-exchange_n cornhill_n john_n gwillim_n in_o bishopigate-street_n over_o against_o the_o royal_a james_n mrs._n mitchel_n at_o the_o crown_n and_o cushion_n westminster-hall_n by_o abel_n roper_n at_o black_a boy_n over_o against_o st._n dunstan's-church_n in_o fleetstreet_n 1698._o price_n three_o shilling_n now_o god_n of_o his_o mercy_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n have_v make_v plain_a his_o word_n let_v we_o take_v heed_n that_o we_o be_v not_o find_v like_o those_o that_o say_v to_o god_n we_o desire_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thy_o way_n job_n 21.14_o but_o let_v all_o take_v to_o the_o lord_n direction_n in_o the_o search_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o he_o say_v it_o be_v they_o that_o testify_v of_o he_o john_n 5.39_o therefore_o we_o shall_v not_o lean_v to_o man_n nor_o our_o own_o receive_a opinion_n but_o see_v if_o those_o truth_n which_o be_v here_o discover_v be_v not_o make_v plain_a by_o the_o word_n for_o the_o scripture_n as_o they_o declare_v the_o lord_n first_o come_n so_o they_o do_v much_o more_o declare_v his_o second_o come_v to_o judge_n and_o reign_v as_o by_o all_o the_o prophet_n be_v foretell_v and_o likewise_o by_o the_o apostle_n confirm_v act_n 3.21_o now_o christ_n first_o come_v be_v but_o dark_o set_v down_o so_o as_o not_o only_o the_o jew_n but_o the_o devil_n themselves_o be_v deceive_v thereby_o and_o therefore_o say_v why_o be_v thou_o come_v to_o torment_v we_o before_o the_o time_n as_o know_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o time_n in_o which_o he_o shall_v reign_v and_o as_o christ_n first_o come_v be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o word_n so_o also_o will_v christ_n second_o come_v be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o word_n and_o it_o be_v because_o of_o israel_n sinfulness_n that_o christ_n be_v lay_v in_o zion_n as_o a_o stumbling-stone_n so_o as_o they_o know_v not_o the_o day_n of_o their_o visitation_n and_o how_o can_v we_o clear_v ourselves_o of_o the_o like_a guiltiness_n as_o not_o to_o fear_v that_o that_o day_n shall_v overtake_v we_o as_o a_o snare_n see_v also_o it_o be_v for_o sin_n that_o the_o gentile_a church_n be_v leave_v to_o delusion_n because_o they_o take_v pleasure_n in_o iniquity_n but_o the_o first_o church_n be_v not_o in_o darkness_n for_o that_o day_n to_o overtake_v they_o at_o unaware_o how_o come_v it_o then_o that_o we_o be_v so_o much_o in_o the_o dark_a as_o to_o this_o matter_n be_v it_o not_o because_o of_o sin_n that_o we_o have_v lose_v the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o also_o have_v no_o desi●e_n to_o know_v it_o but_o the_o lord_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n have_v now_o bring_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o his_o word_n to_o light_n that_o thereby_o knowledge_n may_v be_v increase_v and_o that_o the_o wise_a in_o heart_n may_v consider_v it_o and_o that_o by_o their_o example_n other_o by_o they_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o whoever_o have_v rather_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o good_a of_o soul_n lie_v at_o stake_n than_o themselves_o find_v in_o a_o mistake_n let_v such_o consider_v how_o they_o will_v answer_v it_o at_o the_o great_a day_n and_o the_o lord_n say_v my_o people_n be_v destroy_v for_o lack_n of_o knowledge_n hos_fw-la 4.6_o and_o not_o because_o god_n have_v rebrobate_v they_o nor_o because_o they_o be_v not_o his_o people_n a_o clear_a and_o brief_a explanation_n upon_o the_o chief_a point_n in_o the_o new-testament_n where_o by_o lay_v scripture_n to_o scripture_n it_o be_v full_o prove_v what_o be_v the_o faith_n that_o justify_v and_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v a_o believer_n also_o the_o faith_n of_o abraham_n clear_o explain_v and_o all_o other_o controversal_a point_n relate_v to_o faith_n plain_o state_v and_o answer_v with_o the_o remnant_n and_o first_o church_n peculiar_a call_n also_o the_o more_o general_a calling_n likewise_o prove_v that_o the_o law_n and_o gospel_n speak_v only_o to_o those_o that_o be_v under_o they_o the_o whole_a lay_v down_o in_o a_o plain_a and_o easy_a method_n fit_v to_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o mean_a reader_n by_o m._n mersen_n london_n print_v and_o sell_v by_o john_n clerk_n at_o the_o bible_n in_o the_o old_a change_n john_n gwillim_n in_o bishops-gate-street_n over_o against_o the_o royal_a james_n mrs._n mitchel_n at_o the_o crown_n and_o cushion_n in_o westminster-hall_n and_o mr._n garin_n over_o against_o the_o crown_n tavern_n in_o the_o strand_n the_o corner_n of_o st._n clement_n church_n yard_n 1697._o the_o table_n the_o faith_n of_o abraham_n clear_o explain_v chap._n 2._o p._n 7_o the_o election_n of_o the_o remnant_n and_o first_o church_n c._n 3._o p._n 18_o a_o believer_n justify_v by_o christ_n which_o they_o can_v not_o be_v by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n explain_v ch._n 4._o p._n 31_o such_o as_o have_v believe_v may_v afterward_o fall_v away_o chap_n 5._o p._n 35_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jailor_n explain_v chap._n 6._o p._n 37_o the_o abolish_n the_o ceremonial_a law_n chap._n 7._o p._n 39_o of_o thing_n strangle_v and_o blood_n chap._n 8._o p._n 41_o what_o be_v require_v of_o a_o christian_a chap._n 9_o p._n 42_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o fear_v and_o what_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o fear_v c._n 9_o p._n 47_o christ_n be_v the_o author_n of_o faith_n explain_v chap._n 10._o p._n 49_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n chap._n 11._o p._n 50_o how_o it_o be_v that_o he_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n sin_v not_o chap._n 12._o p._n 52_o the_o meaning_n of_o be_v bear_v again_o explain_v chap._n 13._o p._n 54_o the_o wind_n blow_v where_o it_o list_v explain_v p._n 55_o of_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n or_o turn_v reprobate_a expl_n chap._n 14._o p._n 56_o the_o everlasting_a life_n that_o be_v now_o give_v the_o believer_n explain_v chap._n 15._o p._n 58_o a_o believer_n not_o come_v into_o condemnation_n exp_n chap._n 16._o p._n 60_o a_o belief_n in_o christ_n further_o explain_v chap._n 16._o p._n 65_o show_v who_o be_v they_o that_o be_v condemn_v already_o chap._n 17._o p._n 72_o the_o eternal_a purpose_n explain_v chap._n 18._o p._n 76_o god_n world_v all_o after_o the_o council_n of_o his_o own_o will_n explain_v chap._n 19_o p._n 77_o choose_v from_o the_o foundation_n and_o before_o the_o foundation_n explain_v chap_n 20._o p._n 80_o the_o call_v to_o the_o eternal_a inheritance_n explain_v chap._n 21._o p._n 82_o the_o gift_n and_o calling_n of_o god_n explain_v chap._n 22._o p._n 84_o add_v to_o the_o church_n and_o ordain_v to_o eternal_a life_n and_o christ_n die_v for_o the_o world_n explain_v chap._n 23._o p._n 85_o whereas_o christ_n say_v in_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o rock_n of_o which_o he_o build_v his_o church_n and_o his_o church_n be_v not_o only_o his_o eact_v but_o likewise_o all_o they_o that_o they_o he_o against_o who_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v for_o he_o be_v become_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n to_o all_o they_o that_o obey_v he_o heb._n 5.9_o for_o the_o faith_n that_o god_n require_v of_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o be_v be_v and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o
rewarder_n of_o they_o that_o diligent_o seek_v he_o heb._n 11.6_o and_o to_o show_v the_o immutability_n of_o god_n therefore_o it_o be_v say_v of_o god_n that_o who_o he_o love_v he_o love_v to_o the_o end_n for_o he_o be_v unchangeable_a in_o himself_o for_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n whether_o condition_n a●or_n absolute_a he_o never_o first_o withdraws_a from_o any_o and_o therefore_o ch●…st_n say_v if_o you_o keep_v my_o commandment_n you_o shall_v abide_v 〈◊〉_d my_o live_v joh_n 15.10_o errata_fw-la page_z the_o ●4_n be_v w●…ting_v in_o the_o last_o ●re_n hest_n thou_o that_o thou_o di●st_v not_o receive_v and_o p._n 75._o l._n 25._o psa_fw-la 90.23_o chap._n i._n this_o be_v to_o prove_v when_o and_o at_o what_o time_n the_o believer_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o law_n that_o it_o be_v at_o the_o believer_n first_o resignation_n of_o himself_o to_o christ_n in_o a_o willingness_n to_o take_v his_o yoke_n upon_o he_o so_o as_o to_o render_v his_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o he_o then_o be_v christ_n righteousness_n impute_v to_o he_o for_o his_o justification_n this_o be_v according_a to_o what_o st._n paul_n say_v concern_v the_o church_n at_o their_o first_o reception_n they_o be_v bring_v out_o of_o sin_n darkness_n and_o error_n therefore_o he_o say_v of_o they_o rom._n 3.24_o be_v justify_v free_o by_o his_o grace_n through_o the_o redemption_n that_o be_v in_o jesus_n christ_n who_o god_n have_v set_v forth_o to_o be_v a_o propitiation_n through_o faith_n in_o his_o blood_n to_o declare_v his_o righteousness_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v past_a in_o these_o word_n he_o full_o show_v it_o be_v their_o sin_n which_o be_v commit_v before_o conversion_n which_o upon_o their_o conversion_n and_o resignation_n of_o themselves_o to_o christ_n they_o receive_v remission_n for_o those_o past_a sin_n rom._n 3.28_o gal._n 2.16_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n conclude_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o law_n gal._n 2.16_o that_o be_v as_o before_o say_v at_o his_o first_o resignation_n of_o himself_o to_o christ_n to_o yield_v he_o his_o love_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n he_o be_v then_o justify_v by_o christ_n without_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o law_n from_o all_o his_o past_a sin_n therefore_o he_o say_v rom._n 8.33_o who_o shall_v lay_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o god_n elect_n it_o be_v god_n that_o justifi_v for_o upon_o their_o conversion_n they_o receive_v remission_n so_o as_o none_o of_o their_o past_a sin_n shall_v be_v lay_v to_o their_o charge_n for_o god_n have_v then_o justify_v they_o by_o the_o imputation_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v rom._n 10_o 4._o christ_n be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n for_o righteousness_n to_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v the_o which_o belief_n must_v be_v in_o christ_n and_o his_o word_n in_o which_o he_o require_v our_o love_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n in_o all_o thing_n as_o in_o mat._n 28._o v._n 20._o and_o then_o be_v christ_n the_o end_n fulfil_v or_o com●…eating_v of_o the_o law_n for_o their_o justification_n for_o they_o be_v no_o soon_o thus_o justify_v by_o christ_n but_o they_o must_v live_v unto_o christ_n and_o then_o he_o will_v persist_v to_o fulfil_v and_o complete_a the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n in_o they_o who_o continue_v to_o walk_v in_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o he_o and_o so_o the_o apostle_n clear_o explain_v these_o word_n where_o he_o say_v rom_n 8_o 4._o that_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o law_n may_v be_v fulfil_v in_o we_o who_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n here_o he_o show_v what_o we_o these_o be_v to_o who_o the_o law_n be_v thus_o fulfil_v that_o it_o be_v to_o as_o many_o of_o they_o as_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n and_o he_o also_o say_v verse_n 6._o for_o to_o be_v carnal_o mind_v be_v death_n but_o to_o be_v spiritual_o mind_v be_v life_n and_o peace_n v._o 7._o because_o the_o carnal_a mind_n be_v enmity_n against_o god_n for_o it_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n neither_o indeed_o can_v be_v now_o though_o the_o carnal_a mind_n be_v at_o enmity_n against_o god_n yet_o the_o man_n be_v no_o long_o at_o enmity_n against_o ●…od_n than_o he_o retain_v that_o carnal_a mind_n so_o neither_o be_v the_o believer_n any_o long_o a_o believer_n than_o he_o retain_v a_o mind_n and_o will_n in_o subjection_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n for_o he_o say_v chap_n 6.16_o his_o servant_n you_o be_v to_o who_o you_o obey_v whether_o of_o sin_n unto_o death_n or_o of_o obedience_n unto_o righteousness_n now_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n say_v to_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n eph._n 2.10_o we_o be_v his_o workmanship_n create_v in_o christ_n jesus_n unto_o good_a work_n which_o god_n have_v afore_o ordain_v that_o we_o shall_v walk_v in_o they_o which_o show_v they_o be_v no_o soon_o justify_v and_o set_v clear_a from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o imputation_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n but_o it_o be_v also_o fore-ordained_n of_o god_n that_o they_o shall_v live_v in_o good_a work_n and_o therefore_o christ_n say_v the_o tree_n be_v know_v by_o its_o fruit_n mat._n 7.17,20_o and_o whereas_o st._n paul_n say_v rom._n 10.9,10_o that_o if_o thou_o confess_v with_o thy_o mouth_n the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o shall_v believe_v in_o thy_o heart_n that_o god_n have_v raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a thou_o shall_v be_v save_v for_o with_o the_o heart_n man_n believe_v unto_o righteousness_n and_o with_o the_o mouth_n confession_n be_v make_v unto_o salvation_n which_o show_v if_o the_o belief_n in_o we_o do_v not_o produce_v a_o righteous_a life_n than_o it_o be_v altogether_o unavailable_a and_o whereas_o st._n paul_n say_v tit._n 3.5_o it_o be_v not_o by_o work_n of_o righteousness_n which_o they_o have_v do_v but_o according_a to_o his_o mercy_n he_o save_v they_o by_o the_o wash_n of_o regeneration_n and_o renew_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o also_o show_v when_o they_o be_v thus_o save_v from_o their_o sin_n that_o it_o be_v at_o their_o first_o conversion_n and_o resignation_n of_o themselves_o to_o christ_n and_o he_o further_o show_v how_o they_o be_v save_v that_o it_o be_v by_o the_o wash_n of_o regeneration_n and_o the_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v shed_v on_o they_o abundant_o this_o be_v only_o at_o the_o establish_n of_o the_o first_o christian_n church_n for_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o abundant_a pouring_n forth_o of_o spirit_n upon_o believer_n afterward_o therefore_o these_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o fit_o applicable_a to_o we_o who_o be_v bear_v child_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o have_v the_o call_v of_o the_o gospel_n from_o who_o be_v expect_v a_o improvement_n of_o the_o season_n of_o grace_n that_o god_n have_v put_v into_o our_o hand_n for_o although_o the_o gentile_n that_o have_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v take_v into_o mercy_n without_o work_n of_o righteousness_n yet_o the_o jew_n who_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v then_o exclude_v his_o mercy_n because_o there_o be_v not_o good_a work_n find_v in_o they_o as_o god_n by_o all_o the_o prophet_n and_o christ_n himself_o declare_v matth._n 23.23,24,25,26,27_o wo_n unto_o you_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n hypocrite_n for_o you_o pay_v tithe_n of_o mint_n and_o anise_v and_o cummin_n and_o have_v omit_v the_o weighty_a matter_n of_o the_o law_n judgement_n mercy_n and_o faith_n these_o ought_v you_o to_o have_v do_v and_o not_o to_o leave_v the_o other_o undo_v here_o these_o that_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o the_o law_n the_o practical_a part_n be_v first_o require_v of_o they_o as_o justice_n and_o mercy_n before_o any_o ground_n for_o a_o true_a faith_n to_o take_v place_n and_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o galatian_n c._n 3._o v._n 21,22,23,24,25_o be_v the_o law_n against_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n god_n forbid_v for_o if_o there_o have_v be_v a_o law_n give_v which_o can_v have_v give_v life_n very_o righteousness_n shall_v have_v be_v by_o the_o law_n but_o the_o scripture_n have_v conclude_v all_o under_o sin_n that_o the_o promise_n by_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n may_v be_v give_v to_o they_o that_o believe_v but_o before_o faith_n come_v we_o be_v keep_v under_o the_o law_n shut_v up_o unto_o the_o faith_n which_o shall_v afterward_o be_v reveal_v wherefore_o the_o law_n be_v our_o schoolmaster_n to_o bring_v we_o unto_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o faith_n but_o after_o that_o faith_n be_v come_v we_o be_v no_o long_o under_o a_o schoolmaster_n now_o whereas_o he_o say_v the_o law_n be_v their_o
from_o another_o and_o what_o james_n say_v c._n 1._o v._n 17._o every_o good_a and_o perfect_a gift_n come_v from_o above_o yet_o by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o parable_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o some_o improve_v the_o talent_n they_o have_v receive_v and_o some_o improve_v not_o their_o talon_n matth._n 25._o and_o israel_n be_v cast_v off_o of_o god_n for_o their_o not_o improve_n their_o day_n of_o grace_n matthew_z 23.37_o rom._n 4.11,12,13_o and_o he_o receive_v the_o sign_n of_o circumcision_n a_o seal_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n which_o he_o have_v yet_o be_v uncircumcised_a that_o he_o may_v be_v the_o father_n of_o all_o they_o that_o believe_v though_o they_o be_v not_o circumcise_v that_o righteousness_n may_v be_v impute_v unto_o they_o also_o and_o the_o father_n of_o circumcision_n to_o they_o who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o circumcision_n only_o but_o also_o walk_v in_o the_o step_n of_o that_o faith_n of_o our_o father_n abraham_n which_o he_o have_v be_v yet_o uncircumcised_a for_o the_o promise_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o heir_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o to_o abraham_n or_o to_o his_o seed_n through_o the_o law_n but_o through_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n now_o what_o be_v the_o step_n of_o that_o faith_n that_o our_o father_n abraham_n walk_v in_o be_v uncircumcised_a it_o be_v that_o he_o stagger_v not_o at_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n but_o believe_v that_o he_o shall_v have_v it_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o way_n of_o his_o obedience_n that_o he_o thereby_o shall_v be_v make_v the_o father_n of_o many_o nation_n and_o heir_n of_o the_o world_n which_o carry_v he_o through_o all_o difficulty_n and_o cause_v he_o to_o tread_v in_o the_o step_n of_o righteousness_n according_a as_o the_o lord_n require_v of_o he_o gen._n 17,1,2_o i_o be_o the_o almighty_a god_n walk_v before_o i_o and_o be_v thou_o perfect_a and_o i_o will_v make_v my_o covenant_n between_o i_o and_o thou_o and_o will_v multiply_v thou_o exceed_o these_o word_n show_v that_o god_n require_v of_o abraham_n his_o sincere_a obedience_n that_o thereby_o he_o may_v be_v the_o heir_n of_o this_o promise_n according_o st._n paul_n say_v verse_n 13._o for_o the_o promise_n that_o he_o shoulld_v be_v the_o heir_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o to_o abraham_n or_o to_o his_o seed_n through_o the_o law_n but_o through_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v through_o the_o righteousness_n which_o this_o his_o faith_n produce_v the_o which_o circumcision_n be_v afterward_o give_v he_o as_o a_o seal_n of_o this_o his_o righteousness_n by_o faith_n and_o whether_o circumcise_v or_o uncircumcised_a whosoever_o tread_v in_o the_o step_n of_o our_o father_n abraham_n in_o look_v for_o the_o performance_n of_o the_o promise_n in_o the_o way_n of_o their_o obedience_n shall_v also_o become_v heir_n of_o life_n rom_n 4.14,15,16_o for_o if_o they_o which_o be_v of_o the_o law_n be_v heir_n faith_n be_v make_v void_a and_o the_o promise_v make_v of_o none_o effect_n because_o the_o law_n work_v wrath_n for_o where_o no_o law_n be_v there_o be_v no_o transgression_n therefore_o it_o be_v of_o faith_n that_o it_o may_v be_v of_o grace_n to_o the_o end_n the_o promise_n may_v be_v sure_a to_o all_o the_o seed_n not_o to_o that_o only_a which_o be_v of_o the_o law_n but_o to_o that_o also_o which_o be_v of_o the_o faith_n of_o abraham_n who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o we_o all_o now_o the_o law_n expect_v the_o perfect_a performance_n of_o the_o thing_n require_v before_o they_o can_v become_v justify_v by_o it_o but_o then_o under_o the_o law_n through_o mercy_n they_o that_o do_v render_v their_o sincere_a obedience_n thereunto_o it_o be_v accept_v of_o they_o so_o as_o they_o have_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n impute_v to_o they_o for_o their_o justification_n but_o hereby_o it_o show_v that_o justification_n be_v not_o to_o be_v attain_v by_o the_o law_n but_o that_o justification_n and_o righteousness_n be_v to_o be_v attain_v by_o faith_n that_o draw_v out_o the_o heart_n in_o love_n to_o god_n and_o christ_n with_o a_o assent_n to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o he_o such_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o so_o by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n become_v justify_v and_o where_o this_o comply_a frame_n of_o spirit_n be_v it_o be_v and_o be_v the_o seed_n to_o who_o the_o promise_n belong_v whether_o under_o the_o law_n or_o gospel_n and_o unto_o such_o as_o these_o that_o tread_v in_o abraham_n step_n he_o be_v a_o father_n for_o all_o be_v his_o servant_n to_o who_o you_o yield_v yourselves_o servant_n to_o obey_v whether_o of_o sin_n unto_o death_n or_o of_o obedience_n unto_o righteousness_n rom._n 6.16_o rom._n 4.21,22_o and_o he_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o what_o god_n have_v promise_v he_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o for_o righteousness_n that_o be_v abraham_n be_v full_o persuade_v that_o god_n be_v able_a to_o perform_v what_o he_o have_v promise_v he_o which_o draw_v out_o his_o heart_n to_o yield_v that_o obedience_n which_o god_n require_v of_o he_o he_o thus_o believe_v it_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o for_o righteousness_n and_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n say_v verse_n 23,24,25_o now_o it_o be_v not_o write_v for_o his_o sake_n alone_o that_o it_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o but_o for_o we_o also_o to_o who_o it_o shall_v be_v impute_v if_o we_o believe_v on_o he_o that_o raise_v up_o jesus_n our_o lord_n from_o the_o dead_a who_o be_v deliver_v for_o our_o offence_n and_o be_v raise_v again_o for_o our_o justification_n that_o be_v if_o we_o believe_v in_o he_o that_o raise_v up_o our_o lord_n from_o the_o dead_a that_o the_o purchase_a salvation_n by_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v impute_v according_a as_o he_o in_o his_o word_n have_v declare_v and_o so_o according_o we_o lie_v hold_v of_o the_o promise_n of_o life_n then_o christ_n be_v deliver_v for_o our_o offence_n as_o well_o as_o for_o they_o and_o likewise_o rise_v again_o for_o our_o justification_n as_o well_o as_o they_o if_o we_o according_a as_o these_o roman_n have_v do_v to_o who_o he_o write_v have_v obey_v from_o the_o heart_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n than_o also_o we_o by_o christ_n be_v make_v free_a from_o the_o condemn_a power_n of_o sin_n and_o be_v become_v the_o servant_n of_o righteousness_n rom._n 6.17,18_o but_o we_o be_v no_o soon_o set_v clear_a from_o the_o condemn_a power_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n purchase_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o son_n but_o we_o be_v immediate_o thereupon_o list_a soldier_n of_o christ_n to_o fight_v under_o his_o banner_n against_o the_o world_n the_o flesh_n and_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o our_o corrupt_a affection_n and_o inclination_n and_o bring_v down_o every_o thought_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n 2_o cor._n 10.5_o chap._n iii_o the_o election_n of_o the_o first_o church_n ephes_n 2.8,9,10_o for_o by_o grace_n be_v you_o save_v through_o faith_n and_o that_o not_o of_o yourselves_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n not_o of_o work_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v boast_v for_o we_o be_v his_o workmanship_n create_v in_o christ_n jesus_n unto_o good_a work_n which_o god_n have_v before_o ordain_v that_o we_o shall_v walk_v in_o they_o by_o these_o word_n the_o apostle_n also_o clear_o show_v that_o by_o good_a work_n stand_v alone_o without_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n no_o man_n can_v be_v justify_v in_o his_o sight_n and_o therefore_o all_o boast_n be_v take_v away_o from_o man_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n but_o whereas_o he_o say_v in_o v._o 10._o for_o we_o be_v his_o workmanship_n create_v in_o christ_n jesus_n unto_o good_a work_n which_o god_n have_v before_o ordain_v that_o we_o shall_v walk_v in_o they_o here_o the_o apostle_n have_v his_o peculiar_a reference_n to_o the_o first_o church_n who_o be_v bring_v out_o of_o darkness_n sin_n and_o error_n and_o as_o he_o say_v in_o verse_n 12._o you_o be_v without_o christ_n be_v alien_n from_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o israel_n and_o stranger_n to_o the_o covenant_n of_o promise_n have_v no_o hope_n and_o without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n now_o at_o that_o time_n god_n do_v not_o only_o abound_v in_o his_o mercy_n towards_o they_o of_o the_o first_o church_n in_o all_o wisdom_n and_o prudence_n ephes_n 5.8_o in_o show_v his_o mighty_a power_n in_o they_o and_o in_o call_v they_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v out_o of_o darkness_n into_o his_o marvellous_a light_n 1_o pet._n 2.9_o and_o thereby_o bring_v over_o the_o consent_n of_o their_o will_n to_o his_o law_n he_o do_v then_o free_o justify_v they_o by_o his_o grace_n but_o also_o when_o god_n have_v do_v this_o
for_o they_o it_o be_v fore-ordained_n by_o he_o that_o in_o good_a work_n they_o shall_v walk_v before_o he_o now_o these_o place_n be_v not_o fit_o appliable_a to_o we_o for_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o we_o be_v not_o now_o in_o that_o gross_a darkness_n neither_o be_v we_o stranger_n to_o the_o covenant_n of_o promise_n as_o they_o be_v neither_o be_v we_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o they_o be_v the_o like_a he_o say_v of_o the_o church_n in_o titus_n chap._n 3._o v._n 4,5,6,7_o but_o after_o that_o the_o kindness_n and_o love_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n towards_o man_n appear_v not_o by_o work_n of_o righteousness_n which_o we_o have_v do_v but_o according_a to_o his_o mercy_n he_o save_v we_o by_o the_o wash_n of_o regeneration_n and_o the_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o he_o shed_v on_o we_o abundant_o through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n that_o be_v justify_v by_o his_o grace_n we_o shall_v be_v make_v heir_n according_a to_o the_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n now_o by_o these_o place_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o he_o speak_v this_o concern_v they_o of_o the_o then_o time_n for_o it_o be_v know_v to_o all_o that_o there_o have_v be_v no_o such_o abundant_a pouring_n forth_o of_o the_o spirit_n upon_o the_o chuch_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o these_o be_v they_o of_o who_o the_o apostle_n say_v call_v of_o god_n according_a to_o his_o purpose_n for_o who_o he_o do_v foreknow_v he_o also_o do_v predestinate_a to_o be_v conform_v to_o the_o image_n of_o his_o son_n rom._n 8.28,29_o according_a to_o which_o he_o say_v ephes_n 1.12_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o his_o glory_n who_o first_o trust_v in_o christ._n and_o st._n paul_n say_v act_v 13.48_o as_o many_o as_o be_v ordain_v to_o eternal_a life_n believe_v this_o he_o also_o speak_v of_o the_o then_o time_n and_o of_o the_o church_n that_o first_o trust_v in_o christ_n who_o be_v afore_o choose_v of_o god_n according_a to_o his_o purpose_n which_o be_v to_o confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o follow_a generation_n and_o god_n give_v to_o they_o more_o abundant_o of_o his_o spirit_n to_o secure_v their_o stand_n as_o well_o as_o to_o confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o as_o if_o they_o do_v not_o disinherit_v themselves_o by_o wilful_a sin_v they_o can_v no_o way_n miss_v of_o salvation_n for_o they_o be_v ordain_v choose_v and_o appoint_v to_o it_o of_o god_n as_o israel_n be_v for_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n but_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v to_o have_v the_o fruition_n of_o that_o which_o be_v promise_v without_o their_o own_o endeavour_n therefore_o st._n peter_n say_v save_o yourselves_o from_o this_o untoward_a generation_n act_v 2.40_o and_o make_v your_o call_v and_o election_n sure_a 2_o pet._n 1.10_o and_o by_o the_o abundant_a pouring_n forth_o of_o the_o spirit_n upon_o the_o first_o church_n they_o general_o stand_v and_o the_o major_a part_n in_o scripture_n be_v always_o reckon_v as_o the_o whole_a whereas_o the_o apostle_n say_v as_o many_o as_o be_v ordain_v to_o eternal_a life_n believe_v this_o plain_o show_v that_o this_o ordination_n be_v to_o the_o first_o church_n for_o if_o all_o that_o be_v ordain_v to_o eternal_a life_n then_o believe_v it_o make_v it_o clear_a that_o to_o we_o that_o follow_v after_o there_o remain_v no_o such_o ordination_n according_a to_o this_o st._n james_n say_v act_v 15.14_o simon_n have_v declare_v how_o god_n at_o the_o first_o do_v visit_v the_o gentile_n to_o take_v out_o of_o they_o a_o people_n for_o his_o name_n how_o a_o people_n for_o his_o name_n that_o be_v for_o the_o great_a grace_n here_o and_o for_o the_o great_a glory_n hereafter_o as_o in_o ephes_n 1.12_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o his_o glory_n who_o first_o trust_v in_o christ_n ephes_n 2.7_o that_o in_o the_o age_n to_o come_v he_o may_v show_v the_o exceed_a riches_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o his_o kindness_n towards_o they_o through_o christ_n jesus_n now_o at_o that_o time_n when_o god_n call_v in_o the_o gentile_n be_v the_o time_n when_o god_n make_v his_o promise_n good_a to_o christ_n and_o abraham_n in_o that_o the_o gentile_n be_v take_v into_o covenant_n they_o then_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n without_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o law_n and_o so_o by_o christ_n they_o become_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n and_o be_v thereby_o bring_v into_o subjection_n to_o the_o command_v of_o god_n and_o the_o moral_a law_n matth._n 29.17_o matth._n 20.28_o rom._n 2.13_o and_o so_o with_o israel_n become_v heir_n to_o the_o covenant_n of_o promise_n which_o covenant_n of_o promise_n they_o be_v before_o stranger_n unto_o eph._n 2.12_o and_o at_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o acceptable_a time_n and_o the_o great_a day_n of_o salvation_n to_o the_o gentile_n when_o the_o lord_n then_o thus_o take_v they_o into_o covenant_n with_o himself_o and_o justify_v they_o free_o by_o his_o grace_n without_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o law_n that_o thereby_o he_o may_v bring_v they_o and_o their_o child_n in_o as_o heir_n with_o israel_n to_o who_o the_o promise_n belong_v and_o also_o to_o show_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v his_o chief_a reference_n to_o those_o time_n he_o say_v 2_o cor._n 5.19_o to_o wit_n that_o god_n be_v in_o christ_n reconcile_a the_o world_n unto_o himself_o not_o impute_v their_o trespass_n unto_o they_o and_o have_v commit_v unto_o we_o the_o word_n of_o reconciliation_n and_o he_o say_v in_o chap._n 6._o verse_n 1,2_o we_o then_o as_o worker_n together_o with_o he_o beseech_v you_o also_o that_o you_o receive_v not_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o vain_a for_o he_o say_v i_o have_v hear_v thou_o in_o a_o time_n accept_v and_o in_o the_o day_n of_o salvation_n have_v i_o succour_v thou_o behold_v now_o be_v the_o accept_a time_n behold_v now_o be_v the_o day_n of_o salvation_n for_o than_o be_v the_o accept_a time_n that_o free_a grace_n be_v free_o administer_v only_o by_o the_o change_n of_o their_o will_n and_o affection_n and_o that_o do_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n but_o he_o beseech_v they_o that_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o vain_a for_o if_o they_o wilful_o again_o be_v entangle_v in_o sin_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v receive_v in_o vain_a by_o they_o and_o whereas_o he_o say_v rom_n 3.25_o who_o god_n have_v set_v forth_o to_o be_v a_o propitiation_n through_o faith_n in_o his_o blood_n to_o declare_v his_o righteousness_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v past_a here_o he_o full_o declare_v that_o in_o the_o acceptable_a day_n it_o be_v their_o past_a sin_n be_v then_o pardon_v and_o afterward_o they_o be_v to_o walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n and_o according_o he_o say_v in_o verse_n 26._o to_o declare_v i_o say_v at_o this_o time_n his_o righteousness_n that_o he_o may_v be_v just_a and_o the_o justifier_n of_o he_o which_o believe_v in_o jesus_n thereby_o clear_o show_v that_o this_o justification_n have_v in_o it_o a_o chief_a reference_n to_o those_o time_n at_o which_o time_n the_o apostle_n do_v conclude_v as_o in_o verse_n 28._o therefore_o we_o conclude_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o law_n but_o when_o they_o be_v bring_v in_o as_o heir_n to_o the_o covenant_n of_o promise_n the_o case_n be_v alter_v with_o they_o for_o then_o there_o be_v require_v their_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o all_o god_n command_n and_o precept_n and_o therein_o to_o remain_v faithful_a to_o the_o death_n if_o they_o will_v have_v the_o crown_n of_o life_n by_o the_o everlasting_a covenant_n secure_v to_o they_o for_o than_o they_o and_o their_o child_n be_v to_o retain_v that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v at_o first_o so_o powerful_o deliver_v heb_fw-mi 2.1,2,3,4_o therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o give_v the_o more_o diligent_a heed_n to_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v hear_v lest_o at_o any_o time_n we_o shall_v let_v they_o slip_v for_o if_o the_o word_n speak_v by_o angel_n be_v steadfast_a and_o every_o transgression_n and_o disobedience_n receive_v a_o just_a recompense_n of_o reward_n how_o shall_v we_o escape_v if_o we_o neglect_v so_o great_a salvation_n which_o at_o the_o first_o begin_v to_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o lord_n and_o be_v confirm_v unto_o we_o by_o they_o that_o hear_v he_o god_n also_o bear_v they_o witness_n both_o with_o sign_n and_o wonder_n and_o with_o divers_a miracle_n and_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n thus_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n so_o powerful_o to_o confirm_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o as_o the_o outward_a glory_n be_v
i_o believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n now_o we_o be_v to_o take_v notice_n that_o this_o man_n be_v one_o that_o true_o fear_v god_n and_o in_o that_o he_o then_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o he_o no_o soon_o believe_v but_o he_o know_v that_o he_o must_v render_v to_o he_o the_o like_a obedience_n as_o he_o have_v do_v unto_o god_n the_o which_o he_o believe_v be_v baptize_v and_o also_o the_o text_n say_v that_o philip_n preach_v to_o he_o jesus_n and_o in_o so_o do_v he_o teach_v he_o the_o condition_n upon_o which_o christ_n have_v offer_v life_n and_o salvation_n to_o which_o he_o must_v yield_v if_o he_o will_v become_v justify_v by_o he_o chap._n vii_o abolish_n the_o ceremonial_a law_n the_o yoke_n take_v off_o of_o the_o neck_n of_o the_o disciple_n act_n 15.6,7,8_o and_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n come_v together_o for_o to_o consider_v of_o this_o matter_n and_o when_o there_o have_v be_v much_o dispute_v peter_n rise_v up_o and_o say_v unto_o they_o man_n and_o brethren_n you_o know_v how_o that_o a_o good_a while_n ago_o god_n make_v choice_n among_o we_o that_o the_o gentile_n by_o my_o mouth_n shall_v hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o believe_v and_o god_n which_o know_v the_o heart_n bear_v they_o witness_v give_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n even_o as_o he_o do_v unto_o we_o now_o whereas_o he_o say_v god_n which_o know_v the_o heart_n bear_v they_o witness_v give_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n even_o as_o he_o do_v unto_o we_o that_o be_v god_n bear_v they_o witness_v that_o this_o belief_n in_o they_o be_v according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o god_n give_v to_o the_o first_o gentile-churche_n the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o he_o do_v to_o the_o believe_a jew_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 9th_o verse_n and_o put_v no_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o they_o purify_n their_o heart_n by_o faith_n here_o we_o see_v that_o by_o this_o faith_n their_o heart_n be_v purify_v in_o their_o believe_v the_o mercy_n be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v nor_o retain_v without_o a_o comply_a frame_n of_o spirit_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o yield_v their_o obedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n which_o require_v our_o love_n to_o god_n and_o his_o command_n whereas_o he_o say_v in_o verse_n 10._o now_o therefore_o why_o tempt_v you_o god_n to_o put_v a_o yoke_n upon_o the_o neck_n of_o the_o disciple_n which_o neither_o our_o father_n nor_o we_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v this_o yoke_n which_o he_o here_o speak_v of_o be_v circumcision_n sacrifice_n and_o often_o wash_n and_o purification_n which_o be_v very_o burdensome_a and_o not_o profitable_a for_o they_o can_v no_o way_n make_v the_o comer_n thereunto_o perfect_a but_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n beget_v a_o holy_a life_n for_o in_o the_o believe_a that_o christ_n be_v become_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n to_o all_o that_o obey_v he_o heb._n 5.9_o the_o belief_n of_o this_o make_v faith_n a_o purify_n faith_n but_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n say_v act_v 15.11_o but_o we_o believe_v that_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n we_o shall_v be_v save_v even_o as_o they_o that_o be_v the_o believer_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o be_v circumcise_a which_o have_v yield_v their_o obedience_n unto_o christ_n do_v alike_o believe_v that_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n they_o shall_v be_v save_v even_o as_o the_o believer_n of_o the_o gentile_n that_o have_v embrace_v the_o faith_n in_o yield_v their_o consent_n to_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o gospel_n for_o as_o the_o believer_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v save_v through_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n without_o circumcision_n and_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n so_o the_o believer_n of_o the_o jew_n do_v also_o believe_v that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v without_o they_o as_o well_o as_o the_o gentile_n but_o as_o for_o the_o moral_a law_n we_o be_v as_o much_o oblige_v to_o keep_v it_o as_o ever_o israel_n be_v rom._n 2.13_o for_o not_o the_o hearer_n of_o the_o law_n be_v just_a before_o god_n but_o the_o doer_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v justify_v by_o these_o word_n saint_n paul_n declare_v that_o the_o moral_a law_n be_v in_o as_o full_a force_n as_o ever_o it_o be_v but_o as_o for_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n which_o afterward_o be_v term_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n about_o which_o be_v this_o contention_n it_o be_v then_o to_o be_v abolish_v this_o be_v further_a treat_v of_o act_v 21.21_o they_o be_v inform_v of_o thou_o that_o thou_o teach_v all_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v among_o the_o gentile_n to_o forsake_v moses_n say_v that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o circumcise_v their_o child_n neither_o to_o walk_v after_o their_o custom_n and_o so_o in_o v._o 23,24_o of_o the_o same_o chapter_n it_o be_v to_o the_o like_a effect_n chap._n viii_o of_o thing_n strangle_v and_o blood_n now_o as_o to_o the_o thing_n forbid_v in_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n which_o we_o be_v still_o to_o refrain_v he_o single_v out_o and_o write_v concern_v they_o act_v 15.28,29_o for_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o we_o to_o lay_v upon_o you_o no_o great_a burden_n than_o these_o necessary_a thing_n that_o you_o abstain_v from_o meat_n offer_v to_o idol_n and_o from_o blood_n and_o from_o thing_n strangle_v acd_v from_o fornication_n these_o thing_n not_o be_v forbid_v in_o the_o moral_a law_n it_o be_v think_v good_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o by_o they_o to_o leave_v a_o command_n that_o those_o thing_n shall_v still_o be_v refrain_v but_o as_o for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o which_o be_v include_v the_o moral_a law_n the_o apostle_n have_v before_o well_o instruct_v the_o church_n in_o in_o which_o gospel_n there_o be_v require_v obedience_n to_o all_o god_n command_n and_o precept_n with_o a_o promise_n of_o the_o everlasting_a inheritance_n to_o they_o that_o obey_v rev._n 2.10_o this_o their_o faith_n in_o believe_v the_o promise_n carry_v they_o out_o into_o all_o good_a work_n even_o to_o suffer_v and_o to_o death_n chap._n ix_o what_o be_v require_v of_o a_o christian_n to_o be_v a_o christian_a indeed_o show_v that_o he_o be_v also_o oblige_v to_o keep_v the_o moral_a law_n saint_n paul_n exhort_v timothy_n to_o fight_v the_o good_a fight_n of_o faith_n 1_o tim._n 6.12_o in_o which_o faith_n we_o see_v there_o be_v include_v a_o battle_n to_o be_v fight_v and_o st._n paul_n say_v the_o world_n be_v crucify_v to_o he_o and_o he_o to_o the_o world_n gal._n 6.14_o and_o that_o he_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n must_v become_v a_o new_a creature_n 2_o cor._n 5.17_o rom._n 12.1,2_o and_o that_o you_o present_v your_o body_n a_o live_a sacrifice_n holy_a acceptable_a unto_o god_n which_o be_v your_o reasonable_a service_n and_o be_v not_o conform_v to_o this_o world_n but_o be_v you_o transform_v by_o the_o renew_n of_o your_o mind_n that_o you_o may_v prove_v what_o be_v that_o good_a and_o acceptable_a and_o perfect_a will_n of_o god_n and_o in_o ephes_n 4.22,23,24_o that_o you_o put_v off_o concern_v the_o former_a conversation_n the_o old_a man_n which_o be_v corrupt_a according_a to_o the_o deceitful_a lust_n and_o be_v renew_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o your_o mind_n and_o that_o you_o put_v on_o the_o new_a man_n which_o after_o god_n be_v create_v in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n wherefore_o put_v away_o lie_v speak_v every_o man_n truth_n to_o his_o neighbour_n gal._n 6.7,8,9_o be_v not_o deceive_v god_n be_v not_o mock_v for_o whatsoever_o a_o man_n sow_v that_o shall_v he_o also_o reap_v for_o he_o that_o sow_v to_o the_o flesh_n shall_v of_o the_o flesh_n reap_v corruption_n but_o he_o that_o sow_v to_o the_o spirit_n shall_v of_o the_o spirit_n reap_v life_n everlasting_a let_v we_o not_o be_v weary_a in_o well-doing_n for_o in_o due_a season_n we_o shall_v reap_v if_o we_o faint_v not_o as_o we_o have_v therefore_o opportunity_n let_v we_o do_v good_a unto_o all_o especial_o unto_o they_o who_o be_v of_o the_o household_n of_o faith_n gal._n 5.22,23,24_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v love_n joy_n peace_n long-suffering_a gentleness_n goodness_n faith_n meekness_n temperance_n against_o such_o there_o be_v no_o law_n and_o they_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n have_v crucify_v the_o flesh_n with_o the_o affection_n and_o lust_n now_o though_o there_o be_v no_o law_n to_o condemn_v such_o yet_o there_o be_v the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o guide_v they_o and_o of_o such_o as_o these_o the_o apostle_n speak_v when_o he_o say_v they_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n but_o under_o grace_n the_o like_a he_o say_v gal._n 5.18_o but_o if_o
you_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n you_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n that_o be_v not_o under_o the_o condemn_a power_n of_o the_o law_n for_o such_o as_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n yield_v their_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o moral_a law_n according_o he_o say_v rom._n 2.13_o for_o not_o the_o hearer_n of_o the_o law_n be_v just_a before_o god_n but_o the_o doer_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v justify_v and_o also_o 1_o cor._n 7.19_o circumcision_n be_v nothing_o and_o uncircumcision_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o keep_n the_o command_n of_o god_n and_o st._n john_n say_v chap._n 5.3_o for_o this_o be_v the_o love_n of_o god_n that_o we_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o his_o commandment_n be_v not_o grievous_a and_o christ_n say_v matth._n 19.17_o if_o thou_o will_v enter_v into_o life_n keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o also_o in_o john_n 14.15_o if_o you_o love_v i_o keep_v my_o commandment_n by_o all_o this_o we_o see_v we_o be_v as_o much_o oblige_v to_o keep_v the_o moral_a law_n as_o ever_o israel_n be_v but_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n say_v by_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o law_n there_o shall_v no_o flesh_n be_v justify_v in_o his_o sight_n for_o by_o the_o law_n be_v the_o knowledge_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v by_o the_o law_n we_o be_v all_o sensible_a that_o we_o do_v not_o live_v up_o to_o it_o as_o thereby_o to_o become_v justify_v by_o it_o and_o therefore_o by_o it_o all_o have_v knowledge_n that_o they_o sin_n for_o hone_o can_v live_v up_o to_o that_o perfection_n as_o to_o become_v justify_v by_o it_o without_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n but_o when_o israel_n do_v walk_v blameless_o in_o it_o according_a to_o the_o capacity_n in_o which_o god_n have_v put_v they_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n be_v impute_v for_o their_o justification_n and_o of_o zechariah_n and_o elizabeth_n it_o be_v say_v luke_n 1.6_o they_o be_v both_o righteous_a before_o god_n walk_v in_o all_o the_o command_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o lord_n blameless_a so_o if_o we_o render_v our_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o all_o god_n command_n and_o precept_n we_o may_v then_o look_v to_o christ_n with_o boldness_n for_o our_o justification_n for_o though_o the_o church_n that_o first_o trust_v in_o christ_n be_v save_v without_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o law_n or_o visible_a work_n of_o righteousness_n yet_o not_o without_o a_o inward_a work_n which_o be_v in_o the_o change_n of_o their_o will_n and_o affection_n as_o be_v the_o foundation_n to_o all_o good_a work_n which_o afterward_o they_o according_o walk_v in_o all_o that_o remain_v steadfast_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o also_o the_o apostle_n paul_n give_v charge_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v rich_a in_o good_a work_n 1_o tim._n 6.18,19_o that_o they_o do_v good_a that_o they_o be_v rich_a in_o good_a work_n ready_a to_o distribute_v willing_a to_o communicate_v lay_v up_o in_o store_n for_o themselves_o a_o good_a foundation_n against_o the_o time_n to_o come_v that_o they_o may_v lay_v hold_n on_o eternal_a life_n by_o these_o word_n he_o full_o declare_v that_o good_a work_n be_v a_o foundation_n for_o we_o to_o build_v our_o hope_n of_o salvation_n upon_o as_o well_o as_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n for_o it_o be_v a_o conditional_a covenant_n and_o also_o from_o these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o be_v to_o take_v notice_n there_o be_v another_o time_n to_o come_v before_o eternity_n in_o which_o the_o saint_n will_v be_v bless_v and_o he_o say_v heb._n 11.6_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v he_o for_o he_o that_o come_v to_o god_n must_v believe_v that_o he_o be_v and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o rewarder_n of_o they_o that_o diligent_o seek_v he_o this_o be_v the_o faith_n that_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o all_o good_a work_n whereby_o we_o come_v in_o as_o heir_n to_o the_o promise_a mercy_n for_o christ_n be_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n to_o all_o they_o that_o obey_v he_o heb._n 5.9_o who_o will_v render_v to_o every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o deed_n to_o they_o who_o by_o patient_a continuance_n in_o well-doing_n seek_v for_o glory_n honour_n immortality_n eternal_a life_n but_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v contentious_a and_o do_v not_o obey_v the_o truth_n but_o obey_v unrighteousness_n indignation_n and_o wrath_n tribulation_n and_o anguish_n upon_o every_o soul_n of_o man_n that_o do_v evil_a of_o the_o jew_n first_o and_o also_o of_o the_o gentile_a but_o glory_n honour_n and_o peace_n to_o every_o man_n that_o work_v good_a to_o the_o jew_n first_o and_o also_o to_o the_o gentile_a rom._n 2.6,7,8,9,10_o for_o we_o must_v all_o appear_v before_o the_o judgment-seat_n of_o christ_n that_o every_o one_o may_v receive_v the_o thing_n do_v in_o his_o body_n according_a to_o that_o he_o have_v do_v whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o have_v 2_o cor._n 5.10_o for_o not_o the_o hearer_n of_o the_o law_n be_v just_a before_o god_n but_o the_o doer_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v justify_v rom._n 2.13_o and_o god_n have_v engage_v himself_o by_o his_o promise_n to_o be_v the_o rewarder_n of_o good_a work_n prov._n 19.17_o matth._n 10.39,40,41,42_o matth._n 5.7_o the_o merciful_a shall_v obtain_v mercy_n and_o the_o lord_n say_v rev._n 22.12_o behold_v i_o come_v quick_o and_o my_o reward_n be_v with_o i_o to_o give_v to_o every_o man_n according_a as_o his_o work_n shall_v be_v therefore_o upon_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n st._n paul_n say_v god_n be_v not_o unrighteous_a to_o forget_v your_o work_n and_o labour_n of_o love_n which_o you_o have_v show_v towards_o his_o name_n in_o that_o you_o have_v minister_v to_o the_o saint_n and_o do_v minister_v heb._n 6.10_o and_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n say_v if_o he_o have_v all_o faith_n 1_o cor._n 13.23_o that_o be_v faith_n in_o god_n and_o in_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n with_o a_o belief_n also_o that_o good_a work_n be_v require_v and_o he_o know_a god_n and_o therefore_o if_o he_o do_v they_o not_o in_o love_n to_o god_n and_o love_n to_o his_o neighbour_n it_o will_v profit_v he_o nothing_o for_o it_o be_v we_o have_v turn_v this_o word_n into_o charity_n which_o in_o the_o original_a be_v love_n but_o this_o he_o speak_v to_o show_v that_o god_n require_v our_o love_n in_o all_o our_o action_n and_o according_o he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o faith_n that_o work_v by_o love_n which_o be_v require_v gal._n 5.6_o and_o there_o be_v no_o such_o obedience_n as_o that_o wherein_o the_o heart_n be_v concern_v but_o as_o for_o they_o that_o know_v not_o god_n and_o therefore_o love_v he_o not_o they_o shall_v also_o be_v judge_v according_a to_o their_o work_n so_o the_o believer_n will_v be_v judge_v according_a to_o their_o action_n do_v with_o their_o affection_n for_o it_o be_v not_o only_o our_o believe_v in_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n for_o our_o justification_n will_v stand_v we_o in_o stead_n but_o how_o we_o have_v believe_v in_o christ_n as_o to_o obey_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n which_o will_v make_v we_o bless_v in_o that_o day_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o though_o the_o gentile_n be_v at_o first_o call_v in_o and_o justify_v by_o his_o grace_n yet_o afterward_o all_o that_o be_v not_o immediate_o after_o their_o conversion_n take_v away_o by_o death_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v according_a to_o their_o deed_n do_v in_o the_o body_n from_o the_o time_n of_o conversion_n for_o saint_n peter_n say_v to_o the_o church_n if_o you_o call_v ou_fw-fr the_o father_n who_o without_o respect_n of_o person_n judge_v according_a to_o every_o man_n work_n pass_v the_o time_n of_o your_o sojourn_v here_o in_o fear_n 1_o pet._n 1.17_o that_o be_v the_o believer_n will_v be_v judge_v according_a to_o their_o deed_n from_o the_o time_n they_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o other_o how_o they_o have_v improve_v their_o day_n and_o season_n of_o grace_n in_o refrain_v that_o which_o be_v evil_a and_o in_o order_v their_o conversation_n according_a to_o the_o gospel_n so_o all_o will_v be_v judge_v according_a to_o their_o deed_n do_v in_o their_o body_n whether_o they_o have_v be_v good_a or_o evil_n for_o though_o we_o can_v do_v nothing_o of_o ourselves_o without_o god_n assistance_n yet_o it_o be_v require_v of_o we_o to_o improve_v the_o advantage_n and_o season_n of_o grace_n which_o he_o give_v we_o and_o to_o take_v to_o the_o way_n and_o rule_n that_o he_o have_v set_v before_o we_o in_o which_o way_n he_o have_v promise_v his_o assistance_n and_o it_o be_v such_o will_v be_v bless_v chap._n ix_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o fear_v and_o what_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o fear_v judas_n v._n 12._o these_o be_v spot_n in_o your_o feast_n of_o charity_n when_o they_o feast_v with_o you_o feed_v
themselves_o without_o fear_n cloud_n they_o be_v without_o water_n that_o be_v for_o any_o to_o feed_v themselves_o without_o fear_n the_o apostle_n term_v they_o cloud_n without_o water_n but_o for_o believer_n to_o be_v timerous_o fearful_a of_o themselves_o because_o of_o their_o own_o weakness_n lest_o they_o shall_v offend_v that_o fear_n be_v please_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n because_o it_o keep_v they_o in_o a_o diligent_a watchfulness_n and_o be_v there_o not_o great_a cause_n of_o fear_n the_o apostle_n will_v not_o have_v so_o forewarn_v the_o saint_n of_o that_o roar_a lion_n that_o walk_v about_o seek_v who_o he_o may_v devour_v 1_o pet._n 5.8_o and_o of_o such_o as_o fear_v it_o be_v say_v the_o lord_n will_v deliver_v they_o who_o through_o fear_n of_o death_n be_v all_o their_o life-time_n subject_a to_o bondage_n heb._n 2.15_o here_o we_o see_v there_o be_v comfort_n for_o they_o that_o so_o fear_v but_o as_o for_o such_o as_o be_v mistrustful_o fearful_a of_o the_o faithfulness_n and_o power_n of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v not_o perform_v his_o promise_n according_a to_o his_o word_n and_o therefore_o they_o will_v not_o venture_v the_o loss_n of_o the_o delight_n and_o advantage_n of_o this_o world_n so_o as_o to_o obey_v his_o command_n and_o precept_n of_o such_o fearful_a and_o unbelieving_a it_o be_v of_o who_o the_o lord_n say_v they_o shall_v have_v their_o part_n in_o the_o lake_n which_o burn_v with_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n rev._n 21.8_o therefore_o st._n paul_n say_v to_o the_o saint_n heb._n 10.35_o cast_v not_o away_o therefore_o your_o confidence_n which_o have_v great_a recompense_n of_o reward_n that_o be_v confidence_n in_o the_o power_n and_o faithfulness_n of_o god_n for_o as_o we_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v so_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o he_o be_v the_o rewarder_n of_o they_o that_o diligent_o seek_v he_o heb._n 11._o v._o 6._o and_o that_o the_o crown_n of_o life_n according_a to_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o lord_n will_v be_v give_v to_o they_o that_o continue_v faithful_a to_o the_o death_n rev._n 2.10_o therefore_o st._n paul_n say_v for_o you_o have_v need_n of_o patience_n that_o after_o you_o have_v do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n you_o may_v receive_v the_o promise_n heb._n 10.36_o for_o whosoever_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n come_v in_o as_o heir_n to_o the_o promise_n and_o according_o st._n paul_n say_v 1_o cor._n 9.26_o i_o therefore_o so_o run_v not_o as_o uncertain_o so_o sight_n i_o not_o as_o one_o that_o beat_v the_o air._n this_o be_v the_o apostle_n faith_n his_o confidence_n in_o the_o faithfulness_n of_o the_o promiser_n which_o make_v he_o thus_o run_v and_o fight_v for_o in_o so_o do_v he_o know_v that_o he_o be_v not_o at_o a_o uncertainty_n and_o this_o be_v the_o faith_n or_o belief_n which_o be_v to_o the_o save_n of_o the_o soul_n for_o very_o there_o be_v a_o reward_n for_o the_o righteous_a psal_n 58.11_o for_o god_n do_v never_o justify_v the_o ungodly_a by_o the_o imputation_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n but_o when_o they_o turn_v from_o sin_n unto_o god_n for_o god_n will_v not_o otherwise_o clear_a the_o guilty_a 1_o john_n 4.18_o he_o say_v perfect_a love_n cast_v out_o fear_n that_o be_v where_o perfect_a love_n be_v it_o cast_v out_o all_o slavish_a fear_n but_o not_o a_o filial_a childlike_a fear_n but_o it_o be_v not_o every_o sincere-hearted_n christian_n can_v be_v thus_o assure_v they_o be_v make_v perfect_a in_o love_n and_o those_o that_o be_v so_o be_v not_o thereby_o assure_v that_o their_o love_n will_v so_o remain_v for_o the_o lord_n say_v of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n that_o she_o be_v fall_v from_o her_o first_o love_n for_o which_o she_o be_v threaten_v to_o be_v remove_v out_o of_o his_o favour_n if_o she_o do_v not_o repent_v and_o do_v she_o first_o work_n rev._n 2.4,5_o chap._n x._o christ_n the_o author_n of_o faith_n heb._n 12.2_o look_v unto_o jesus_n the_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o faith_n for_o have_v not_o god_n promise_v christ_n and_o by_o he_o everlasting_a life_n to_o all_o they_o that_o shall_v keep_v his_o covenant_n there_o have_v be_v no_o ground_n for_o faith_n or_o hope_v of_o salvation_n therefore_o of_o this_o faith_n christ_n be_v the_o author_n the_o which_o faith_n or_o hope_n cause_v all_o those_o worthy_n of_o old_a to_o undergo_v all_o those_o difficulty_n mention_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n which_o be_v as_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n to_o encourage_v we_o to_o suffer_v and_o to_o follow_v the_o lord_n jesus_n through_o all_o difficulty_n who_o for_o the_o joy_n that_o be_v set_v before_o he_o endure_v the_o cross_n despise_v the_o shame_n and_o be_v set_v down_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n ch_n 12._o v._n 2._o the_o which_o if_o we_o according_o deny_v ourselves_o in_o obedience_n to_o he_o christ_n will_v then_o complete_o finish_v our_o faith_n in_o give_v the_o crown_n of_o life_n to_o they_o who_o have_v continue_v faithful_a to_o the_o death_n chap._n xi_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n and_o to_o overcome_v the_o world_n 1_o john_n 5.1_o whosoever_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n be_v bear_v of_o god_n and_o every_o one_o that_o love_v he_o that_o beget_v love_v he_o also_o that_o be_v beget_v of_o he_o now_o we_o must_v always_o look_v to_o the_o word_n that_o go_v before_o and_o to_o those_o that_o follow_v after_o if_o we_o will_v come_v to_o a_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o word_n for_o in_o that_o he_o say_v they_o that_o love_v god_n they_o likewise_o love_v christ_n that_o be_v beget_v of_o he_o or_o else_o they_o can_v be_v bear_v of_o god_n for_o if_o they_o or_o we_o be_v not_o by_o our_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n bring_v off_o from_o the_o delight_n of_o this_o world_n we_o can_v be_v bear_v of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v such_o a_o belief_n in_o we_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o draw_v out_o our_o heart_n to_o love_n and_o obey_v he_o as_o god_n or_o else_o our_o belief_n in_o he_o be_v not_o such_o as_o make_v we_o to_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n therefore_o he_o say_v in_o verse_n 2._o by_o this_o we_o know_v that_o we_o love_v the_o child_n of_o god_n when_o we_o love_v god_n &_o keep_v his_o commandment_n for_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n we_o be_v command_v to_o love_v the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o by_o keep_v the_o command_v of_o god_n it_o be_v we_o know_v that_o we_o love_v god_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o v._o 3._o this_o be_v the_o love_n of_o god_n that_o we_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o his_o commandment_n be_v not_o grievous_a by_o which_o we_o see_v our_o love_n to_o god_n and_o christ_n be_v in_o keep_v their_o command_n and_o he_o say_v in_o verse_n 4._o for_o whatsoever_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n overcome_v the_o world_n and_o this_o be_v the_o victory_n that_o overcome_v the_o world_n even_o our_o faith_n what_o mean_v the_o apostle_n here_o in_o say_v that_o by_o faith_n they_o overcome_v the_o world_n he_o mean_v all_o the_o vain_a fleshly_a and_o covetous_a desire_n of_o any_o thing_n relate_v to_o the_o world_n which_o by_o their_o faith_n they_o overcome_v which_o faith_n set_v they_o on_o work_n look_v for_o the_o reward_n promise_v which_o be_v the_o crown_n of_o life_n but_o notwithstanding_o some_o have_v again_o be_v overcome_v by_o the_o world_n and_o so_o make_v shipwreck_n of_o faith_n and_o a_o good_a conscience_n 1_o tim._n 1.19_o and_o other_o as_o in_o 2_o pet._n 2.18,19_o they_o allure_v through_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n through_o much_o wantonness_n those_o that_o be_v clean_o escape_v from_o they_o who_o live_v in_o error_n while_o they_o promise_v they_o liberty_n they_o themselves_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o corruption_n for_o of_o who_o a_o man_n be_v overcome_v of_o the_o same_o be_v he_o bring_v in_o bondage_n by_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o plain_a than_o that_o those_o that_o have_v have_v the_o new_a birth_n wrought_v in_o they_o and_o have_v overcome_v the_o world_n may_v again_o be_v overcome_v by_o the_o world_n and_o bring_v into_o bondage_n and_o so_o the_o latter_a end_n be_v worse_a with_o they_o than_o the_o beginning_n as_o in_o ver_fw-la 20,21_o now_o the_o man_n that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n be_v bring_v off_o from_o the_o world_n and_o whilst_o he_o so_o continue_v newborn_a or_o bring_v off_o from_o the_o world_n he_o sin_v not_o because_o he_o do_v not_o wilful_o commit_v sin_n for_o the_o sin_n that_o be_v not_o wilful_o commit_v will_v not_o be_v impute_v for_o christ_n remain_v their_o advocate_n john_n 5.16_o if_o any_o man_n see_v his_o
that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o you_o except_o you_o be_v reprobate_n now_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n there_o be_v a_o twofold_a way_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o church_n for_o christ_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n the_o spirit_n that_o dwell_v with_o you_o shall_v be_v in_o you_o john_n 14.17_o because_o unto_o they_o be_v give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v in_o they_o which_o afterward_o also_o be_v but_o with_o the_o church_n but_o christ_n in_o every_o true_a believer_n must_v be_v so_o in_o they_o as_o to_o have_v the_o ruling-power_n in_o their_o heart_n and_o affection_n in_o that_o their_o will_n must_v be_v bring_v into_o subjection_n unto_o christ_n by_o a_o comply_a frame_n of_o spirit_n to_o his_o will_n and_o thus_o christ_n dwell_v in_o every_o true_a believer_n for_o whosoever_o be_v in_o christ_n in_o they_o be_v require_v a_o mind_n agreeable_a to_o the_o will_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o thereby_o may_v rule_v in_o the_o heart_n now_o the_o corinthian_n have_v embrace_v the_o faith_n in_o yield_v their_o consent_n to_o be_v obedient_a unto_o christ_n and_o have_v also_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o who_o st._n paul_n afterward_o hear_v of_o their_o disorderly_a walk_n therefore_o he_o write_v to_o they_o to_o examine_v themselves_o whether_o they_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o to_o prove_v themselves_o whether_o christ_n be_v still_o thus_o in_o they_o or_o not_o for_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o thus_o in_o they_o than_o they_o have_v rebel_v from_o their_o subjection_n unto_o he_o and_o thereby_o grieve_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o so_o become_v reprobate_n but_o those_o that_o have_v never_o yield_v their_o obedience_n to_o god_n or_o christ_n can_v proper_o be_v say_v to_o be_v rebel_n or_o reprobate_n because_o they_o do_v never_o own_v themselves_o as_o servant_n to_o they_o but_o do_v all_o along_o yield_v themselves_o servant_n to_o sin_n for_o which_o they_o shall_v receive_v their_o punishment_n though_o not_o as_o rebel_n or_o reprobate_n but_o israel_n who_o god_n have_v take_v into_o covenant_n with_o himself_o they_o likewise_o be_v term_v reprobate_n for_o their_o wilful_a disobedience_n for_o which_o they_o be_v reject_v of_o god_n jer._n 6.28,30_o they_o be_v all_o grievous_a revolter_n walk_v with_o slander_n they_o be_v brass_n and_o iron_n they_o be_v all_o corrupter_n reprobate_n silver_n shall_v man_n call_v they_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v reject_v they_o now_o though_o the_o lord_n say_v the_o spirit_n like_o the_o wind_n blow_v where_o it_o list_v but_o it_o list_v not_o to_o blow_v on_o they_o by_o who_o it_o be_v grieve_v and_o therefore_o israel_n be_v reject_v now_o some_o of_o they_o of_o corinth_n be_v fall_v into_o great_a iniquity_n and_o also_o have_v speak_v evil_a of_o st._n paul_n and_o some_o other_o disciple_n therefore_o he_o say_v in_o verse_n 6._o but_o i_o trust_v that_o you_o shall_v know_v that_o we_o be_v not_o reprobate_n as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v you_o shall_v know_v that_o we_o have_v not_o rebel_v from_o our_o great_a master_n and_o therefore_o not_o reprobate_n for_o it_o be_v say_v every_o one_o be_v his_o servant_n to_o who_o they_o yield_v themselves_o to_o obey_v his_o servant_n they_o be_v to_o who_o they_o obey_v whether_o of_o sin_n unto_o death_n or_o of_o obedience_n unto_o righteousness_n rom._n 6.16_o chap._n xv._o the_o everlasting_a life_n that_o be_v now_o give_v the_o believer_n explain_v john_n 6.47_o christ_n say_v he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o have_v everlasting_a life_n now_o we_o have_v misapprehend_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o everlasting_a life_n that_o be_v now_o give_v the_o believer_n be_v no_o otherwise_o give_v except_o to_o the_o stand_a witness_n than_o it_o be_v to_o adam_n and_o eve_n in_o paradise_n for_o when_o sin_n in_o the_o soul_n be_v pardon_v the_o will_v change_v christ_n righteousness_n impute_v then_o it_o be_v the_o everlasting_a life_n lose_v by_o adam_n again_o take_v place_n of_o which_o everlasting_a life_n nothing_o can_v again_o disinherit_v they_o but_o wilful_a and_o presumptuous_o sin_v or_o negligent_o and_o careless_o depart_v from_o the_o way_n of_o god_n therefore_o christ_n say_v rev._n 3.2,3_o be_v watchful_a and_o strengthen_v the_o thing_n which_o remain_v that_o be_v ready_a to_o die_v for_o i_o have_v not_o find_v thy_o work_n perfect_a before_o god_n if_o therefore_o thou_o will_v not_o watch_v i_o will_v come_v upon_o thou_o as_o a_o thief_n and_o thou_o shall_v not_o know_v what_o hour_n i_o will_v come_v upon_o thou_o and_o likewise_o st._n paul_n caution_n the_o church_n of_o corinth_n fear_v lest_o the_o serpent_n shall_v beguile_v they_o as_o he_o beguile_v eve_n 2_o cor._n 11.3_o for_o if_o adam_n and_o eve_n have_v never_o sin_v they_o have_v never_o die_v now_o the_o church_n thus_o stand_v be_v to_o take_v heed_n lest_o they_o shall_v fall_v and_o to_o fight_v to_o keep_v their_o ground_n thereby_o to_o make_v their_o call_v and_o election_n sure_a 2_o pet._n c._n 1._o v._n 10._o and_o st._n paul_n say_v phil._n 2.12,13_o it_o be_v god_n that_o work_v in_o they_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v according_a to_o his_o own_o good_a pleasure_n that_o be_v it_o be_v so_o far_o the_o good_a will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n to_o restore_v they_o and_o renew_v they_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o to_o put_v they_o into_o a_o capacity_n of_o sincere_a obedience_n in_o which_o capacity_n they_o be_v to_o use_v their_o utmost_a diligence_n to_o work_v out_o their_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a so_o likewise_o be_v we_o to_o do_v the_o same_o also_o for_o those_o that_o receive_v the_o talent_n be_v to_o improve_v that_o which_o be_v give_v they_o and_o he_o that_o do_v not_o according_a to_o his_o ability_n improve_v that_o which_o he_o have_v receive_v be_v therefore_o condemn_v matth._n 25.15_o chap._n xvi_o a_o believer_n not_o come_v into_o condemnation_n explain_v christ_n say_v john_n 5.24_o he_o that_o hear_v my_o word_n and_o believe_v on_o he_o that_o send_v i_o have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o shall_v not_o come_v into_o condemnation_n but_o be_v pass_v from_o death_n unto_o life_n these_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n may_v admit_v of_o a_o twofold_a meaning_n that_o be_v whilst_o the_o believer_n continue_v believe_v that_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v have_v according_a to_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o way_n of_o their_o love_n and_o obedience_n whilst_o he_o thus_o believe_v he_o shall_v never_o come_v into_o condemnation_n but_o this_o which_o the_o lord_n here_o say_v have_v its_o peculiar_a reference_n to_o his_o second_o come_v at_o which_o time_n he_o come_v to_o judge_v the_o world_n and_o restore_v all_o thing_n as_o in_o verse_n 22._o the_o judgement_n be_v then_o commit_v unto_o christ_n at_o which_o time_n as_o in_o verse_n 23._o all_o man_n shall_v honour_v the_o son_n as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n the_o which_o never_o yet_o have_v be_v do_v for_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o jew_n hitherto_o have_v not_o honour_v the_o son_n as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n neither_o by_o the_o turk_n be_v the_o son_n honour_v as_o the_o father_n therefore_o this_o the_o lord_n speak_v for_o the_o time_n when_o he_o again_o shall_v come_v that_o whosoever_o he_o shall_v then_o find_v a_o true_a practical_a believer_n shall_v not_o come_v into_o condemnation_n for_o then_o the_o everlasting_a life_n that_o be_v now_o give_v the_o believer_n will_v be_v secure_v to_o their_o person_n for_o at_o that_o time_n they_o will_v be_v put_v into_o a_o capacity_n never_o more_o to_o offend_v for_o not_o only_o the_o raise_a saint_n but_o the_o live_a believer_n will_v then_o receive_v the_o crown_n of_o life_n for_o when_o the_o lord_n again_o come_v the_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n be_v give_v to_o all_o that_o love_v his_o appear_v 2_o tim._n 4.8_o for_o when_o a_o inherent_a perfect_a righteousness_n be_v give_v and_o the_o continuance_n of_o it_o secure_v to_o we_o by_o the_o establish_n of_o the_o now-promised_n new_a everlasting_a covenant_n then_o be_v life_n crown_v to_o the_o soul_n this_o be_v the_o covenant_n of_o promise_n which_o now_o the_o believer_n with_o israel_n be_v but_o heir_n to_o and_o if_o you_o be_v christ_n then_o be_v you_o abraham_n be_v seed_n and_o heir_n according_a to_o the_o promise_n gal._n 3.29_o but_o when_o the_o lord_n again_o come_v his_o other_o sheep_n will_v be_v bring_v into_o that_o fold_n with_o they_o that_o do_v secure_o stand_v for_o the_o lord_n say_v at_o that_o time_n when_o there_o be_v one_o fold_v there_o shall_v be_v but_o one_o shepherd_n john_n 10.16_o therefore_o this_o will_v not_o be_v till_o the_o lord_n again_o come_v but_o we_o take_v all_o the_o promise_n as_o
method_n of_o salvation_n which_o if_o according_o be_v lieve_v they_o shall_v be_v save_v therefore_o christ_n say_v to_o the_o church_n rev._n 3.3_o remember_v therefore_o how_o thou_o have_v receive_v and_o hear_v and_o hold_v fast_o and_o repent_v if_o therefore_o thou_o shall_v not_o watch_v i_o will_v come_v on_o thou_o as_o a_o thief_n and_o thou_o shall_v not_o know_v what_o hour_n i_o will_v come_v upon_o thou_o here_o we_o see_v the_o lord_n call_v upon_o they_o to_o put_v in_o practice_n what_o they_o have_v hear_v which_o if_o they_o do_v not_o he_o will_v come_v upon_o they_o at_o a_o hour_n they_o be_v not_o aware_a of_o and_o as_o the_o thief_n come_v to_o destroy_v so_o the_o lord_n will_v come_v to_o the_o destruction_n of_o they_o that_o have_v his_o word_n and_o will_v not_o according_a thereunto_o wait_v for_o he_o with_o a_o prepare_a heart_n in_o love_n to_o receive_v he_o for_o he_o say_v if_o you_o keep_v my_o commandment_n you_o shall_v abide_v in_o my_o love_n john_n 15.10_o and_o in_o the_o 14._o v._o you_o be_v my_o friend_n if_o you_o do_v whatsoever_o i_o command_v you_o and_o also_o the_o lord_n say_v john_n 8.31_o if_o you_o continue_v in_o my_o word_n then_o be_v you_o my_o disciple_n indeed_o and_o the_o offer_n of_o mercy_n by_o christ_n be_v to_o all_o that_o will_v take_v his_o yoke_n upon_o they_o matth._n 11.29_o and_o the_o lord_n say_v mark_v 8.34,35,36_o whosoever_o will_v come_v after_o i_o let_v he_o deny_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n and_o follow_v i_o for_o whosoever_o will_v save_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o but_o whosoever_o shall_v lose_v his_o life_n for_o my_o sake_n and_o the_o gospel_n the_o same_o shall_v save_v it_o for_o what_o shall_v it_o profit_v a_o man_n if_o he_o gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v his_o own_o soul_n this_o lose_n of_o the_o life_n for_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v take_v under_o a_o twofold_a head_n not_o only_a when_o we_o be_v call_v to_o lay_v down_o our_o life_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o also_o in_o deny_v ourselves_o the_o pleasure_n delight_n and_o advantage_n of_o this_o world_n for_o this_o be_v speak_v in_o general_a to_o all_o that_o will_v save_v their_o life_n to_o life_n eternal_a according_a to_o this_o the_o lord_n say_v john_n 12.25_o he_o that_o love_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o and_o he_o that_o hate_v his_o life_n in_o this_o world_n shall_v keep_v it_o unto_o life_n eternal_a and_o christ_n say_v matth._n 7.21_o not_o every_o one_o that_o say_v unto_o i_o lord_n lord_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n matth._n 7.24_o christ_n say_v whosoever_o hear_v these_o say_n of_o i_o and_o do_v they_o be_v like_a to_o a_o wise_a man_n that_o build_v his_o house_n upon_o a_o rock_n so_o if_o we_o lay_v hold_v upon_o the_o promise_n of_o life_n according_a to_o the_o condition_n offer_v by_o christ_n we_o build_v upon_o that_o rock_n that_o will_v never_o fail_v we_o so_o as_o when_o the_o great_a storm_n arise_v that_o man_n will_v secure_o stand_v because_o he_o be_v faithful_a that_o have_v promise_v but_o if_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n for_o justification_n yet_o walk_v according_a to_o our_o own_o imagination_n and_o not_o according_a to_o his_o command_n it_o be_v build_n upon_o a_o sandy_a foundation_n for_o which_o they_o will_v have_v damnation_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n when_o he_o send_v his_o disciple_n to_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n he_o then_o say_v he_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v but_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v mark_v 16.15,16_o that_o be_v it_o be_v the_o gospel_n which_o then_o christ_n send_v forth_o his_o disciple_n to_o teach_v which_o they_o that_o hear_v be_v to_o believe_v according_o the_o lord_n say_v matth._n 28.19,20_o go_v you_o therefore_o and_o teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o i_o command_v you_o and_o lo_o i_o be_o with_o you_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v with_o the_o race_n of_o the_o disciple_n which_o be_v of_o the_o remnant_n he_o will_v be_v with_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o they_o be_v those_o that_o none_o can_v pluck_v out_o of_o his_o hand_n and_o of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v they_o follow_v the_o lamb_n whithersoever_o he_o go_v and_o also_o he_o will_v never_o forsake_v any_o whilst_o they_o keep_v his_o way_n in_o observe_v to_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o command_v they_o now_o the_o belief_n in_o christ_n that_o be_v save_v be_v to_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n that_o his_o righteousness_n be_v to_o be_v apply_v for_o the_o justification_n of_o the_o sinner_n according_a to_o the_o condition_n as_o it_o be_v tender_v by_o he_o which_o be_v in_o the_o observe_v to_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o command_v they_o for_o though_o at_o the_o first_o receive_v of_o the_o gospel_n by_o his_o free_a grace_n they_o be_v save_v from_o their_o sin_n by_o yield_v to_o the_o condition_n that_o christ_n require_v yet_o all_o of_o they_o that_o be_v not_o immediate_o take_v away_o by_o death_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v according_a to_o the_o performance_n of_o those_o condition_n before_o they_o can_v be_v think_v meet_a to_o partake_v of_o the_o crown_n of_o life_n and_o in_o every_o believer_n be_v require_v the_o faith_n of_o god_n elect_n that_o in_o the_o way_n of_o their_o love_n and_o obedience_n they_o shall_v become_v heir_n to_o the_o promise_n zacheus_n desire_v to_o be_v a_o disciple_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o know_v in_o be_v so_o his_o obedience_n be_v require_v therefore_o he_o say_v lord_n half_a of_o my_o good_n i_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o if_o i_o have_v take_v any_o thing_n from_o any_o by_o false_a accusation_n i_o will_v restore_v he_o fourfold_o luke_n 19.8_o but_o many_o of_o we_o like_o the_o jew_n of_o old_a by_o their_o tradition_n make_v the_o command_n of_o god_n of_o no_o effect_n so_o many_o with_o we_o by_o their_o half-faith_n or_o believe_v but_o half_a way_n in_o that_o they_o leave_v out_o the_o condition_n upon_o which_o life_n and_o salvation_n be_v offer_v by_o christ_n have_v make_v their_o faith_n in_o christ_n of_o none_o effect_v to_o the_o save_n of_o their_o soul_n because_o the_o promise_n of_o life_n be_v upon_o condition_n of_o our_o obedience_n in_o which_o whosoever_o remain_v faithful_a to_o the_o death_n shall_v have_v the_o crown_n of_o life_n but_o for_o any_o to_o think_v that_o christ_n die_v to_o give_v they_o a_o liberty_n to_o sin_n it_o be_v of_o such_o god_n say_v thou_o think_v that_o i_o be_v altogether_o such_o a_o one_o as_o thyself_o but_o i_o will_v reprove_v thou_o and_o set_v they_o in_o order_n before_o thy_o eye_n now_o consider_v this_o you_o that_o forget_v god_n lest_o i_o tear_v you_o in_o piece_n and_o there_o be_v none_o to_o deliver_v psal_n 50.21,22_o this_o forget_v god_n be_v forget_v their_o duty_n as_o to_o yield_v obedience_n unto_o his_o command_n but_o for_o our_o have_a faith_n in_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n separate_v from_o good_a work_n be_v dead_a standing_z alone_z james_z 2.20,21,22_o but_o will_v thou_o know_v vain_a man_n that_o faith_n without_o work_n be_v dead_a be_v not_o abraham_n our_o father_n justify_v by_o work_n when_o he_o have_v offer_v isaac_n his_o son_n upon_o the_o altar_n see_v thou_o how_o faith_n wrought_v with_o his_o work_n and_o by_o work_n be_v faith_n make_v perfect_a thereby_o show_v that_o a_o lively_a and_o perfect_a faith_n always_o includ_v good_a work_n as_o first_o the_o inward_a work_n upon_o the_o will_n and_o affection_n and_o afterward_o good_a work_v put_v in_o practice_n therefore_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 26_o verse_n for_o as_o the_o body_n without_o the_o spirit_n be_v dead_a so_o faith_n without_o work_n be_v dead_a also_o and_o chap_n 1._o v._n 25._o but_o whoso_o look_v into_o the_o perfect_a law_n of_o liberty_n and_o continue_v therein_o he_o be_v not_o a_o forgetful_a hearer_n but_o a_o doer_n of_o the_o work_n this_o man_n shall_v be_v bless_v in_o his_o deed_n now_o why_o be_v it_o term_v the_o law_n of_o liberty_n because_o such_o as_o walk_v in_o obedience_n thereunto_o be_v by_o christ_n set_v free_a from_o the_o condemn_a power_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n 26._o v._n if_o any_o man_n among_o you_o seem_v to_o be_v religious_a and_o bridle_v
not_o his_o tongue_n but_o deceive_v his_o own_o heart_n this_o man_n religion_n be_v vain_a v._o 27._o pure_a religion_n and_o undefiled_a before_o god_n and_o the_o father_n be_v this_o to_o visit_v the_o fatherless_a and_o widow_n in_o their_o affliction_n and_o to_o keep_v themselves_o unspotted_a from_o the_o world_n here_o we_o see_v st._n james_n as_o well_o as_o st._n peter_n find_v some_o that_o be_v willing_a to_o take_v up_o with_o a_o imaginary_a faith_n occasion_v through_o the_o mistake_n of_o some_o of_o the_o say_n of_o st_n paul_n although_o the_o same_o apostle_n in_o such_o abundance_n of_o place_n do_v so_o clear_o explain_v himself_o by_o show_v what_o be_v require_v of_o they_o that_o be_v to_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n as_o have_v be_v already_o prove_v and_o he_o also_o show_v that_o good_a work_n be_v a_o foundation_n for_o we_o to_o build_v our_o hope_n of_o salvation_n upon_o as_o well_o as_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n 1_o tim._n 6.17,18,19_o and_o he_o also_o say_v it_o be_v not_o the_o hearer_n of_o the_o law_n be_v just_a before_o god_n but_o the_o doer_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v justify_v rom._n 2.13_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v give_v our_o body_n a_o live_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v our_o reasonable_a service_n rom._n 12.1_o and_o also_o that_o we_o must_v maintain_v a_o continual_a warfare_n eph._n 6.11,12,13_o and_o as_o we_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v so_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v a_o rewarder_n of_o they_o that_o diligent_o seek_v he_o heb._n 11.6_o now_o in_o all_o these_o place_n in_o which_o st._n paul_n write_v plain_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n we_o will_v not_o believe_v he_o in_o because_o they_o do_v not_o so_o well_o suit_n our_o inclination_n but_o in_o those_o say_n of_o he_o which_o we_o have_v not_o understand_v he_o in_o we_o have_v place_v our_o belief_n to_o the_o contradiction_n of_o himself_o and_o all_o the_o reveal_v will_n of_o god_n in_o his_o word_n and_o though_o st._n peter_n do_v forewarn_v we_o that_o in_o st._n paul_n epistle_n there_o be_v some_o thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v which_o then_o some_o do_v wrest_v to_o their_o own_o destruction_n 2_o pet._n 3.16_o yet_o we_o have_v not_o thereby_o take_v warning_n but_o how_o we_o shall_v answer_v it_o before_o the_o great_a judge_n which_o be_v just_a at_o hand_n we_o have_v need_v now_o to_o consider_v before_o it_o be_v too_o late_o now_o the_o church_n that_o first_o trust_v in_o christ_n be_v more_o eminent_o choose_v and_o call_v of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o abundant_a shed_n forth_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o they_o they_o general_o stand_v but_o the_o follow_a generation_n be_v but_o raise_v to_o that_o from_o which_o israel_n fall_v and_o therefore_o by_o their_o miscarriage_n we_o have_v need_n take_v warning_n for_o the_o apostle_n say_v if_o god_n spare_v not_o the_o natural_a branch_n take_v heed_n lest_o he_o also_o spare_v not_o thou_o rom._n 11.21_o and_o oh_o that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o sufficient_a warning_n to_o we_o chap._n xvii_o show_v who_o be_v they_o that_o be_v condemn_v already_o and_o who_o it_o be_v that_o will_v find_v redemption_n saint_n john_n say_v chap._n 3.36_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o see_v life_n but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o this_o st._n john_n speak_v of_o they_o that_o hear_v christ_n and_o believe_v not_o on_o he_o the_o like_o the_o lord_n say_v of_o himself_o in_o the_o 18_o verse_n he_o that_o believe_v on_o i_o be_v not_o condemn_v but_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o be_v condemn_v already_o because_o he_o have_v not_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o only_a begotton_n son_n of_o god_n by_o these_o word_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o those_o that_o be_v condemn_v already_o be_v those_o that_o refuse_v to_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o not_o that_o those_o be_v condemn_v for_o not_o believe_v in_o he_o who_o never_o hear_v of_o he_o for_o if_o so_o the_o lord_n have_v then_o exclude_v all_o the_o first_o church_n who_o be_v then_o to_o be_v bring_v home_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o we_o have_v false_o imagine_v from_o these_o and_o the_o like_a word_n as_o where_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n mark_v 16.15,16_o go_v you_o into_o all_o the_o world_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n he_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v but_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v which_o word_n have_v only_o a_o reference_n to_o such_o as_o believe_v and_o such_o as_o refuse_v believe_v so_o as_o not_o to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o the_o truth_n when_o they_o hear_v it_o for_o according_a to_o the_o command_v of_o the_o lord_n st._n paul_n say_v the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v to_o every_o creature_n which_o be_v under_o heaven_n col._n 1.23_o now_o the_o child_n do_v not_o fall_v under_o this_o condemnation_n because_o they_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o believe_v or_o not_o believe_v neither_o do_v the_o heathen_a now_o fall_v under_o this_o condemnation_n who_o know_v not_o the_o gospel_n for_o none_o shall_v be_v damn_v for_o not_o believe_v that_o they_o never_o hear_v and_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v 1_o john_n 5.12_o he_o that_o have_v the_o son_n have_v life_n and_o he_o that_o have_v not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v not_o life_n these_o word_n do_v not_o exclude_v they_o that_o never_o hear_v of_o the_o son_n so_o as_o none_o of_o they_o shall_v never_o receive_v life_n by_o the_o son_n for_o there_o will_v be_v a_o redemption_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v as_o will_v be_v full_o prove_v in_o another_o treatise_n and_o when_o christ_n come_v to_o judge_v the_o world_n and_o at_o the_o last_o and_o final_a judgement_n they_o be_v all_o say_v to_o be_v judge_v according_a to_o their_o deed_n do_v in_o the_o body_n whether_o they_o have_v be_v good_a or_o evil_a and_o though_o in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o sheep_n and_o goat_n there_o be_v but_o two_o sort_n mention_v yet_o there_o be_v a_o three_o include_v in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o poor_a and_o the_o child_n be_v not_o capable_a to_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o blessing_n or_o the_o curse_n in_o their_o do_v or_o not_o do_v good_a to_o the_o distress_a sheep_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o the_o word_n all_o be_v not_o mention_v when_o he_o sentence_v they_o to_o everlasting_a fire_n matth._n 25.41_o and_o whereas_o saint_n paul_n say_v to_o take_v vengeance_n on_o they_o that_o know_v not_o god_n and_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o everlasting_a destruction_n 2_o thes_n 1.5,6,7,8,9_o the_o word_n all_o he_o mention_n not_o but_o he_o include_v they_o that_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n yet_o in_o work_n deny_v he_o in_o that_o they_o will_v not_o yield_v obedience_n to_o he_o and_o the_o apostle_n say_v rom._n 3.19_o that_o what_o thing_n soever_o the_o law_n say_v it_o say_v to_o they_o who_o be_v under_o the_o law_n so_o likewise_o what_o the_o gospel_n say_v it_o say_v to_o they_o that_o be_v under_o the_o gospel_n that_o be_v to_o they_o that_o have_v the_o gospel_n and_o obey_v or_o refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o same_o to_o they_o according_o do_v the_o promise_a mercy_n or_o the_o threaten_a judgement_n belong_v and_o in_o the_o gospel_n be_v require_v our_o obedience_n to_o the_o moral_a law_n and_o also_o he_o say_v rom._n 2.11,12_o there_o be_v no_o respect_n of_o person_n with_o god_n for_o as_o many_o as_o have_v sin_v without_o the_o law_n shall_v also_o perish_v without_o the_o law_n and_o as_o many_o as_o have_v sin_v in_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o law_n by_o which_o we_o see_v the_o heathen_n that_o have_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n come_v not_o under_o the_o same_o judgement_n or_o condemnation_n of_o the_o fiery_a indignation_n unto_o which_o the_o wicked_a christian_n be_v condemn_v because_o the_o law_n and_o gospel_n only_o speak_v to_o they_o that_o be_v under_o it_o neither_o do_v the_o old_a world_n go_v into_o the_o fire_n of_o hell_n and_o all_o be_v judge_v according_a to_o their_o work_n and_o according_a to_o their_o deed_n do_v in_o the_o body_n whether_o they_o have_v be_v good_a or_o evil_n therefore_o to_o they_o that_o have_v do_v no_o evil_a work_n there_o will_v be_v a_o general_a release_n when_o they_o be_v judge_v therefore_o all_o child_n will_v certain_o be_v clear_v neither_o do_v all_o offender_n fall_v under_o everlasting_a condemnation_n the_o which_o by_o god_n assistance_n i_o
their_o father_n in_o this_o portion_n have_v the_o disciple_n their_o part_n and_o when_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n be_v become_v the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o god_n and_o of_o his_o christ_n rev._n 11.15_o then_o it_o be_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n be_v become_v the_o kingdom_n of_o their_o father_n into_o which_o they_o shall_v thus_o glorious_o shine_v forth_o and_o this_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o 1_o cor._n 2.9_o likewise_o isa_n 64.4_o and_o ephes_n 2.6,7_o and_o then_o they_o shall_v have_v their_o reigning-power_n on_o the_o earth_n rev._n 5.10_o next_o under_o christ_n their_o supreme_a head_n now_o the_o lord_n all_o along_o whilst_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n speak_v but_o in_o parable_n as_o to_o his_o second_o come_v and_o kingdom_n matth._n 13.34_o by_o reason_n israel_n be_v sinful_a for_o which_o it_o be_v determine_v of_o god_n they_o shall_v be_v leave_v to_o blindness_n and_o that_o christ_n shall_v suffer_v by_o they_o for_o though_o in_o other_o thing_n they_o sin_v wilful_o yet_o they_o ignorant_o crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o life_n act_v 3.17_o and_o the_o lord_n again_o speak_v of_o his_o second_o come_v and_o of_o gather_v the_o nation_n and_o by_o the_o parable_n of_o set_v the_o sheep_n on_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o the_o goat_n on_o his_o left_a he_o say_v to_o they_o on_o his_o right_a hand_n come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n inherit_v the_o kingdom_n prepare_v for_o you_o from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n matth._n 25.34_o now_o from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o material_a heaven_n and_o earth_n there_o be_v no_o other_o kingdom_n prepare_v but_o this_o world_n which_o will_v be_v again_o restore_v but_o the_o law_n and_o gospel_n speak_v but_o to_o those_o that_o be_v under_o it_o rom._n 3.19_o and_o chap._n 2.12,14_o the_o lord_n may_v therefore_o have_v his_o reference_n to_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v lay_v in_o israel_n for_o the_o world_n to_o come_v at_o which_o foundation_n christ_n be_v figurative_o slay_v in_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n and_o then_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o canaan_n prepare_v for_o israel_n by_o their_o enemy_n destruction_n and_o the_o gentile_n that_o christ_n shall_v find_v in_o obedience_n among_o the_o christian_a nation_n at_o his_o come_n will_v then_o be_v make_v the_o inheritor_n with_o israel_n of_o this_o kingdom_n for_o they_o be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v heir_n with_o israel_n of_o the_o promise_v everlasting_a covenant_n whereby_o eternal_a life_n be_v secure_v to_o the_o soul_n but_o they_o be_v also_o to_o have_v a_o share_n with_o they_o in_o their_o inheritance_n for_o of_o japhet_n it_o be_v prophesy_v that_o he_o shall_v dwell_v in_o the_o tent_n of_o shem_n and_o therefore_o this_o kingdom_n may_v likewise_o be_v say_v to_o be_v prepare_v for_o they_o and_o also_o at_o the_o restoration_n of_o all_o thing_n it_o be_v that_o israel_n will_v be_v restore_v to_o their_o own_o land_n joel_n 3.16_o and_o then_o will_v god_n make_v her_o wilderness_n like_o eden_n and_o her_o desert_n like_o the_o garden_n of_o the_o lord_n isa_n 51.3_o and_o then_o it_o be_v christ_n will_v have_v his_o peaceable_a kingdom_n isa_n 11.9_o they_o shall_v not_o hurt_v nor_o destroy_v in_o all_o my_o holy_a mountain_n for_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v full_a of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o the_o water_n cover_v the_o sea_n isa_n 65.23,24,25_o and_o in_o that_o day_n god_n will_v make_v a_o covenant_n for_o they_o with_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n and_o with_o the_o fowl_n of_o heaven_n and_o with_o the_o creep_a thing_n of_o the_o ground_n and_o he_o will_v break_v the_o bow_n and_o the_o sword_n and_o the_o battle_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n and_o will_v make_v they_o lie_v down_o safe_o hosea_n 2.18,19_o and_o then_o will_v god_n betrothe_v they_o unto_o he_o for_o ever_o in_o righteousness_n and_o in_o judgement_n and_o in_o lovingkindness_n and_o in_o mercy_n v._o 19_o and_o then_o this_o be_v the_o peace_n the_o lord_n have_v declare_v shall_v be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o kingdom_n but_o when_o christ_n first_o come_v he_o say_v he_o come_v not_o to_o send_v peace_n on_o earth_n but_o a_o sword_n matth._n 10.34_o for_o in_o this_o time_n they_o that_o be_v the_o true_a follower_n of_o christ_n the_o devil_n will_v be_v still_o raise_v they_o up_o enemy_n and_o christ_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n that_o in_o he_o they_o may_v have_v peace_n but_o in_o the_o world_n they_o shall_v have_v tribulation_n john_n 16.33_o and_o likewise_o st._n paul_n say_v that_o after_o his_o departure_n shall_v grievous_a wolf_n enter_v in_o among_o they_o not_o spare_v the_o flock_n and_o also_o of_o their_o own_o self_n shall_v man_n arise_v speak_v perverse_a thing_n to_o draw_v away_o disciple_n after_o they_o act_v 20.29,30_o which_o according_o follow_v now_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v prov._n 16.7_o when_o a_o man_n way_n please_v the_o lord_n he_o make_v his_o enemy_n to_o be_v at_o peace_n with_o he_o this_o king_n solomon_n speak_v of_o the_o natural_a seed_n of_o israel_n which_o have_v they_o continue_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n they_o have_v then_o be_v the_o emblem_n of_o that_o peaceable_a kingdom_n that_o be_v now_o to_o come_v and_o they_o in_o this_o time_n shall_v have_v be_v the_o head_n and_o not_o the_o tail_n and_o above_o only_a deut._n 28.13_o but_o there_o never_o be_v any_o such_o promise_n make_v to_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o time_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a they_o be_v foretell_v they_o shall_v be_v afflict_v persecute_a and_o meet_v with_o fiery_a trial_n neither_o be_v they_o to_o adorn_v themselves_o 1_o pet._n 3.3_o chap._n xv._o the_o elect_a church_n discover_v and_o why_o god_n suffer_v the_o beast_n to_o arise_v to_o deceive_v the_o nation_n also_o a_o twofold_a be_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n now_o christ_n by_o his_o word_n declare_v that_o he_o will_v have_v a_o elect_a church_n or_o people_n throughout_o this_o world_n that_o shall_v never_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o beast_n or_o false_a prophet_n and_o that_o it_o be_v to_o his_o disciple_n which_o come_v of_o the_o remnant_n of_o israel_n unto_o who_o christ_n promise_v to_o be_v with_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n matth._n 38.20_o and_o that_o none_o shall_v pluck_v they_o out_o of_o his_o hand_n and_o though_o the_o first_o gentile_a church_n that_o receive_v the_o word_n from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o disciple_n be_v likewise_o also_o elect_v and_o fore-chosen_a of_o god_n and_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o their_o succeed_a generation_n be_v but_o raise_v to_o that_o from_o which_o israel_n fall_v and_o god_n foresee_v that_o the_o gentile_a nation_n that_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n will_v afterward_o fall_v away_o by_o have_v no_o love_n to_o the_o truth_n but_o take_v pleasure_n in_o unrighteousness_n as_o israel_n and_o the_o people_n of_o old_a have_v do_v rom._n 1.21,22_o therefore_o it_o be_v determine_v of_o god_n they_o shall_v be_v leave_v to_o strong_a delusion_n to_o believe_v a_o lie_n because_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v 2_o thes_n 2.10,11,12_o for_o which_o cause_n it_o be_v the_o determination_n of_o god_n that_o all_o that_o dwell_v upon_o the_o earth_n shall_v worship_v the_o beast_n who_o name_n be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n of_o the_o lamb_n slay_v from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n rev._n 13.7,8_o that_o be_v all_o the_o kindred_n and_o tongue_n and_o nation_n that_o dwell_v upon_o all_o the_o earth_n that_o the_o beast_n have_v dominion_n over_o shall_v worship_v he_o except_o those_o who_o name_n be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n for_o the_o word_n speak_v to_o they_o that_o receive_v it_o and_o it_o be_v those_o fell_a into_o the_o snare_n that_o have_v not_o a_o love_n to_o it_o but_o take_v pleasure_n in_o unrighteousness_n and_o luther_n say_v that_o the_o beast_n and_o false_a prophet_n be_v general_o comprehend_v under_o one_o head_n and_o the_o lord_n say_v rev._n 17.8_o and_o they_o that_o dwell_v upon_o the_o earth_n shall_v wonder_v who_o name_n be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n when_o they_o behold_v the_o beast_n now_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v by_o the_o word_n in_o a_o treatise_n concern_v election_n that_o there_o be_v no_o election_n through_o the_o first_o world_n of_o people_n nor_o till_o after_o the_o miscarriage_n of_o israel_n in_o the_o wilderness_n then_o do_v the_o lord_n secure_v a_o certain_a remnant_n of_o they_o to_o himself_o at_o which_o time_n israel_n be_v lay_v for_o the_o
it_o be_v not_o hide_v from_o thou_o neither_o be_v it_o far_o off_o 14._o v._n but_o the_o word_n be_v very_o nigh_o unto_o thou_o in_o thy_o mouth_n and_o in_o thy_o heart_n that_o thou_o may_v do_v it_o 15._o v._n see_v i_o have_v set_v before_o thou_o this_o day_n life_n and_o good_a and_o death_n and_o evil._n the_o covenant_n we_o see_v here_o in_o the_o 6._o v._o be_v the_o promise_a covenant_n in_o which_o god_n will_v circumcise_v their_o heart_n and_o the_o heart_n of_o their_o seed_n that_o they_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n their_o god_n with_o all_o their_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o their_o soul_n that_o they_o may_v live_v and_o do_v all_o his_o commandment_n as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o 8._o v._n but_o now_o it_o be_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v put_v into_o our_o mouth_n and_o in_o our_o heart_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v that_o they_o and_o we_o may_v do_v it_o for_o he_o say_v i_o have_v set_v before_o thou_o life_n and_o good_a death_n and_o evil._n 16._o v._o in_o that_o i_o command_v thou_o this_o day_n to_o love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n to_o walk_v in_o his_o way_n and_o to_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o his_o statute_n and_o his_o judgement_n that_o thou_o may_v live_v and_o when_o a_o lawyer_n ask_v our_o saviour_n christ_n what_o he_o shall_v do_v to_o inherit_v eternal_a life_n luke_n 10.26,27,28,29_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o what_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n how_o read_v thou_o 27._o v._n and_o he_o answer_v say_v thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o strength_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o mind_n and_o thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o 28._o v._n and_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o have_v answer_v right_a this_o do_v and_o thou_o shall_v live_v and_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o mat._n 22.40_o on_o these_o two_o command_n hang_v all_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o when_o the_o young_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n come_v to_o our_o saviour_n and_o ask_v he_o what_o he_o shall_v do_v to_o inherit_v eternal_a life_n the_o lord_n say_v unto_o he_o ●eep_v the_o commandment_n as_o in_o matth._n 19.17_o by_o all_o which_o we_o see_v that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n shall_v 〈◊〉_d the_o rule_n of_o our_o life_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o moses_n in_o his_o song_n deut._n 31.30_o also_o go_v on_o in_o his_o former_a way_n of_o speak_v in_o that_o he_o include_v the_o adopt_a seed_n with_o the_o natural_a seed_n of_o abraham_n and_o in_o the_o 31._o chap._n and_o last_o ver_fw-la it_o be_v say_v moses_n speak_v in_o the_o ear_n of_o all_o the_o congregation_n of_o israel_n the_o word_n of_o this_o song_n until_o they_o be_v end_v wherein_o he_o say_v give_v ear_n o_o you_o heaven_n and_o i_o will_v speak_v and_o hear_v o_o earth_n the_o word_n of_o my_o mouth_n we_o also_o here_o see_v that_o moses_n term_v the_o prince_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o people_n to_o be_v the_o heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o who_o the_o word_n of_o this_o song_n to_o the_o half_a part_n of_o the_o 21._o ver_fw-la do_v particular_o belong_v in_o which_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o come_v upon_o they_o as_o though_o they_o have_v be_v already_o past_a and_o from_o the_o half_a part_n of_o the_o 21._o verse_n to_o the_o 25._o verse_n he_o speak_v of_o that_o degenerate_a root_n of_o gall_n and_o wormwood_n of_o who_o god_n say_v in_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o 21._o v._o to_o israel_n i_o will_v move_v they_o to_o jealousy_n with_o those_o that_o be_v not_o a_o people_n i_o will_v provoke_v they_o to_o anger_n with_o a_o foolish_a nation_n now_o st._n paul_n direct_v these_o very_a word_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n rom._n 10.19_o as_o know_v they_o be_v the_o foolish_a nation_n with_o who_o israel_n shall_v be_v move_v to_o jealousy_n and_o provoke_v to_o anger_n withal_o first_o move_v to_o jealousy_n in_o that_o the_o messiah_n be_v preach_v and_o offer_v to_o they_o to_o bring_v they_o into_o covenant_n with_o god_n second_o anger_n in_o that_o they_o bring_v on_o they_o that_o miserable_a destruction_n which_o remain_v to_o this_o day_n now_o when_o st._n paul_n write_v this_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n but_o sew_v of_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o gospel_n but_o he_o to_o bear_v witness_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o know_v that_o it_o be_v that_o nation_n which_o by_o god_n be_v term_v to_o be_v the_o foolish_a nation_n a_o foolish_a nation_n in_o that_o when_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n they_o abide_v not_o in_o the_o commandment_n deliver_v to_o they_o by_o which_o christ_n and_o the_o promise_n be_v attainable_a the_o which_o be_v make_v with_o their_o father_n at_o mount_n sinai_n when_o they_o come_v out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o worship_v other_o god_n nor_o make_v unto_o themselves_o any_o grave_v image_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o commit_v idolatry_n nor_o blasphemy_n murder_n breach_n of_o the_o sabbath_n adultery_n fornication_n and_o theft_n all_o which_o and_o much_o more_o be_v their_o continual_a practice_n and_o their_o theft_n be_v in_o take_v the_o people_n substance_n for_o their_o pardon_n and_o indulgence_n for_o there_o be_v none_o that_o can_v forgive_v sin_n but_o god_n only_o these_o horrible_a cry_a sin_n with_o their_o unsatiable_a bloodthirsty_a cruelty_n to_o the_o saint_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n by_o which_o their_o wilful_a and_o abominable_a disobedience_n exclude_v they_o from_o the_o mercy_n promise_v in_o and_o through_o christ_n and_o will_v bring_v upon_o they_o all_o those_o intolerable_a curse_n which_o be_v here_o pronounce_v against_o their_o land_n and_o themselves_o they_o be_v that_o root_n of_o gall_n and_o wormwood_n against_o who_o those_o worse_a curse_n do_v particular_o belong_v now_o that_o this_o foolishness_n be_v mean_v by_o their_o fall_n off_o paul_n make_v it_o further_o evident_a by_o what_o he_o write_v to_o the_o galathian_o in_o which_o he_o say_v o_o foolish_a galathian_n who_o have_v bewitch_v you_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o obey_v the_o truth_n now_o we_o see_v here_o that_o he_o term_v these_o foolish_a upon_o the_o same_o account_n as_o the_o other_o be_v so_o term_v but_o here_o he_o rehearse_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o moses_n because_o they_o relate_v not_o unto_o they_o but_o unto_o the_o former_a for_o in_o the_o follow_a verse_n of_o moses_n his_o song_n god_n say_v of_o this_o foolish_a nation_n deut._n 32.22,23,24_o for_o a_o fire_n be_v kindle_v in_o my_o anger_n and_o shall_v burn_v unto_o the_o low_a hell_n and_o shall_v consume_v the_o earth_n with_o her_o increase_n and_o set_v on_o fire_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o mountain_n 23._o v._n i_o will_v heap_v mischief_n upon_o they_o i_o will_v spend_v my_o arrow_n upon_o they_o 24._o v._n they_o shall_v be_v burn_v with_o hunger_n and_o devour_v with_o burn_a heat_n and_o with_o bitter_a destruction_n i_o will_v also_o send_v the_o tooth_n of_o beast_n upon_o they_o with_o the_o poison_n of_o serpent_n of_o the_o dust_n now_o we_o know_v that_o these_o judgement_n here_o set_v down_o be_v not_o inflict_v on_o israel_n land_n but_o we_o see_v they_o evident_o make_v out_o in_o this_o roman_a esau_n land_n which_o be_v that_o root_n of_o bitterness_n and_o whereas_o god_n say_v a_o fire_n be_v kindle_v in_o my_o anger_n which_o shall_v burn_v to_o the_o low_a hell_n by_o which_o we_o may_v plain_o see_v that_o there_o be_v more_o than_o one_o hell_n and_o this_o word_n of_o he_o give_v we_o full_o to_o understand_v whence_o this_o fire_n come_v that_o do_v thus_o consume_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o mountain_n that_o it_o be_v the_o anger_n of_o god_n which_o cause_v it_o which_o fire_n extend_v itself_o down_o to_o the_o low_a hell_n and_o rise_v upward_a into_o the_o earth_n the_o which_o conume_v the_o earth_n with_o her_o increase_n by_o those_o torrent_n or_o river_n of_o fire_n the_o which_o proceed_v from_o the_o foundation_n of_o those_o mountain_n the_o which_o mountain_n god_n have_v set_v as_o sign_n for_o these_o several_a hundred_o year_n as_o a_o mark_n for_o the_o fulfil_n of_o these_o prophecy_n and_o to_o inlighten_v the_o think_v christian_n that_o they_o may_v know_v to_o who_o these_o judgement_n do_v appertain_v and_o also_o that_o they_o may_v make_v preparation_n for_o the_o lord_n now_o whereas_o god_n say_v in_o the_o 24._o v._n i_o will_v also_o send_v the_o tooth_n of_o beast_n upon_o they_o with_o the_o poison_n of_o serpent_n of_o the_o dust_n the_o meaning_n of_o which_o word_n be_v much_o like_a to_o what_o isaiah_n say_v
unrighteous_a shall_v cease_v from_o their_o naughtiness_n but_o the_o righteous_a shall_v rest_v in_o he_o and_o he_o shall_v open_v the_o gate_n of_o paradise_n and_o stay_v the_o threaten_v sword_n against_o adam_n and_o feed_v the_o lamb_n with_o the_o fruit_n of_o life_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n shall_v be_v in_o they_o he_o shall_v bind_v up_o belial_n and_o give_v his_o own_o child_n power_n to_o tread_v down_o hurtful_a spirit_n and_o the_o lord_n shall_v rejoice_v in_o his_o child_n and_o accept_v they_o as_o his_o belove_a for_o evermore_o then_o shall_v abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n be_v glad_a and_o then_o shall_v i_o and_o all_o saint_n rejoice_v now_o my_o child_n you_o have_v hear_v all_o therefore_o choose_v unto_o you_o either_o light_n or_o darkness_n either_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n or_o the_o work_v of_o belial_n and_o we_o answer_v our_o father_n say_v we_o will_v walk_v before_o the_o lord_n according_a to_o his_o law_n and_o my_o father_n say_v the_o lord_n be_v witness_n and_o his_o angel_n be_v witness_v and_o i_o be_o witness_n and_o yourselves_o be_v witness_n of_o the_o word_n of_o my_o mouth_n and_o when_o we_o answer_v we_o will_v be_v witness_n levy_n rest_v with_o this_o charge_n be_v give_v unto_o his_o child_n and_o daniel_n speak_v of_o the_o time_n when_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n shall_v become_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o raise_a saint_n dan._n 7.9_o he_o say_v i_o behold_v till_o the_o throne_n be_v cast_v down_o and_o the_o ancient_a of_o day_n do_v sit_v who_o garment_n be_v white_a as_o snow_n and_o the_o hair_n of_o his_o head_n like_o the_o pure_a wool_n his_o throne_n be_v like_o the_o fiery_a flame_n and_o his_o wheel_n as_o burn_a fire_n v._o 10._o a_o fiery_a stream_n issue_v and_o come_v forth_o from_o before_o he_o thousand_o thousand_o minister_v unto_o he_o and_o ten_o thousand_o time_n ten_o thousand_o stand_v before_o he_o the_o judgement_n be_v set_v and_o the_o book_n be_v open_v v._o 11._o i_o behold_v then_o because_o of_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o great_a word_n which_o the_o horn_n speak_v i_o behold_v even_o till_o the_o beast_n be_v slay_v and_o his_o body_n destroy_v and_o give_v to_o the_o burn_a flame_n you_o see_v here_o also_o that_o daniel_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v he_o behold_v till_o the_o beast_n be_v slay_v which_o may_v only_o signify_v that_o he_o receive_v the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n and_o his_o body_n destroy_v his_o greatness_n and_o his_o grandeur_n of_o his_o power_n break_v after_o which_o he_o be_v give_v to_o the_o burn_a flame_n soul_n and_o body_n and_o as_o st._n john_n say_v after_o christ_n come_v the_o beast_n be_v take_v alive_a and_o cast_v into_o a_o lake_n of_o sire_n burn_v with_o brimstone_n and_o daniel_n say_v v._o 12._o as_o concern_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o beast_n they_o have_v their_o dominion_n take_v away_o yet_o their_o life_n be_v prolong_v for_o a_o season_n and_o a_o time_n v._o 13._o i_o see_v in_o the_o night_n vision_n and_o behold_v one_o like_o the_o sun_n of_o man_n come_v with_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n and_o come_v to_o the_o ancient_a of_o day_n and_o they_o bring_v he_o near_o before_o he_o v._o 14._o and_o there_o be_v give_v he_o dominion_n and_o glory_n and_o a_o kingdom_n that_o all_o people_n nation_n and_o language_n shall_v serve_v he_o his_o dominion_n be_v a_o everlasting_a dominion_n which_o shall_v not_o pass_v away_o and_o his_o kingdom_n that_o which_o shall_v not_o be_v destroy_v and_o whereas_o the_o prophet_n say_v there_o be_v give_v to_o christ_n dominion_n glory_n and_o a_o kingdom_n which_o be_v that_o all_o people_n nation_n and_o language_n shall_v serve_v and_o obey_v he_o and_o in_o v._o 18._o it_o be_v say_v the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a shall_v take_v the_o kingdom_n and_o possess_v the_o kingdom_n for_o ever_o even_o for_o ever_o and_o ever_o here_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a shall_v take_v the_o kingdom_n that_o be_v be_v possess_v with_o the_o kingdom_n or_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o which_o christ_n be_v head_n and_o he_o tell_v we_o in_o the_o 27._o v._n that_o the_o kingdom_n dominion_n and_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o kingdom_n under_o the_o whole_a heaven_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a who_o kingdom_n be_v a_o everlasting_a kingdom_n and_o all_o dominion_n shall_v serve_v and_o obey_v he_o we_o see_v by_o these_o word_n that_o it_o be_v full_o clear_v where_o this_o kingdom_n be_v say_v to_o be_v which_o will_v be_v give_v to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a that_o it_o be_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o kingdom_n under_o the_o whole_a heaven_n therefore_o it_o must_v be_v upon_o the_o earth_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n for_o isaiah_n say_v c._n 24._o v._n 4._o the_o earth_n mourn_v and_o fade_v away_o the_o world_n languish_v and_o fade_v away_o the_o haughty_a people_n of_o the_o earth_n do_v languish_v in_o these_o last_o word_n the_o prophet_n tell_v we_o his_o meaning_n in_o say_v the_o earth_n mourn_v and_o the_o world_n languish_v for_o he_o say_v it_o be_v the_o haughty_a people_n of_o the_o earth_n do_v languish_v v._o 5._o the_o earth_n also_o be_v defile_v under_o the_o inhabitant_n thereof_o because_o they_o have_v transgress_v the_o law_n change_v the_o ordinance_n break_v the_o everlasting_a covenant_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o the_o earth_n be_v defile_v through_o the_o sinfulness_n of_o man_n that_o be_v upon_o it_o now_o christ_n die_v to_o restore_v lose_v man_n that_o he_o may_v purchase_v to_o himself_o a_o glorious_a church_n without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n and_o he_o will_v restore_v the_o earth_n to_o be_v for_o what_o it_o be_v intend_v in_o the_o first_o creation_n which_o be_v for_o the_o bring_n up_o of_o a_o holy_a seed_n and_o to_o be_v israel_n inheritance_n and_o the_o earth_n be_v prepare_v for_o their_o nourishment_n which_o as_o the_o earth_n do_v fill_v god_n may_v translate_v they_o to_o those_o heavenly_a habitation_n now_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n christ_n have_v more_o than_o a_o roll_a power_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n or_o with_o his_o saint_n in_o heaven_n but_o then_o will_v be_v give_v to_o he_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o serve_v and_o obey_v he_o then_o shall_v it_o be_v term_v but_o one_o kingdom_n as_o have_v but_o one_o head_n to_o be_v the_o chief_a rule_v power_n and_o the_o raise_a saint_n to_o rule_v under_o he_o and_o daniel_n do_v further_o assure_v we_o by_o the_o interpretation_n of_o nebuchadnezar_n dream_v dan._n 2.44_o that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o those_o king_n shall_v the_o god_n of_o heaven_n set_v up_o a_o kingdom_n which_o never_o shall_v be_v destroy_v and_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v not_o be_v leave_v to_o other_o people_n but_o it_o shall_v break_v in_o piece_n and_o consume_v all_o these_o kingdom_n and_o it_o shall_v stand_v for_o ever_o v._o 45._o for_o as_o much_o as_o thou_o see_v that_o the_o stone_n be_v cut_v out_o of_o the_o mountain_n without_o hand_n and_o that_o it_o break_v in_o piece_n the_o iron_n the_o brass_n the_o clay_n the_o silver_n and_o the_o gold_n the_o great_a god_n have_v make_v know_v to_o the_o king_n what_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v hereafter_o and_o the_o dream_n be_v certain_a and_o the_o interpretation_n thereof_o be_v sure_a now_o whereas_o the_o prophet_n here_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o dream_n be_v certain_a and_o the_o interpretation_n thereof_o be_v sure_a that_o be_v we_o may_v bind_v upon_o it_o that_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n will_v set_v up_o a_o kingdomwhich_n never_o will_v be_v destry_v and_o that_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v not_o be_v leave_v to_o other_o people_n but_o it_o shall_v break_v in_o piece_n and_o consume_v all_o other_o kingdom_n and_o stand_v for_o ever_o for_o although_o it_o be_v say_v christ_n and_o his_o raise_a saint_n shall_v reign_v a_o thousand_o year_n the_o which_o as_o i_o before_o say_v those_o word_n do_v not_o at_o all_o signify_v that_o the_o reign_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o raise_a saint_n shall_v continue_v no_o long_o than_o the_o thousand_o year_n but_o that_o the_o glory_n may_v not_o so_o eminent_o or_o visible_o appear_v after_o satan_n be_v loose_v to_o accomplish_v his_o wickedness_n in_o his_o deceive_v his_o gog_n and_o magog_n after_o which_o he_o shall_v receive_v his_o final_a doom_n now_o whereas_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o isa_n 26.19,20,21_o thy_o dead_a man_n
which_o the_o lord_n for_o our_o better_a enlighten_v tell_v we_o in_o mat._n 13.52_o that_o every_o scribe_n that_o be_v well_o instruct_v bring_v out_o of_o his_o treasury_n thing_n new_a and_o old_a that_o be_v for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n we_o must_v search_v the_o old_a for_o indeed_o they_o both_o give_v light_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o and_o as_o to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o say_n this_o generation_n i_o be_v ignorant_a of_o how_o to_o apprehend_v it_o and_o be_v former_o ask_v by_o a_o gentleman_n that_o have_v no_o belief_n of_o the_o bible_n how_o i_o can_v since_o my_o lord_n have_v so_o falfyfy_v his_o word_n in_o his_o promise_n as_o concern_v his_o come_n in_o that_o generation_n and_o since_o there_o have_v be_v so_o many_o generation_n and_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v at_o which_o time_n i_o can_v not_o give_v he_o a_o satisfactory_a answer_n neither_o any_o that_o can_v prove_v so_o to_o myself_o at_o which_o i_o be_v much_o trouble_v although_o it_o do_v no_o way_n shake_v my_o belief_n in_o the_o lord_n as_o not_o to_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o as_o be_v so_o he_o have_v make_v satisfaction_n for_o all_o they_o that_o true_o love_v and_o fear_v he_o for_o through_o mercy_n i_o have_v have_v those_o experience_n of_o the_o lord_n unto_o i_o that_o i_o be_v not_o stagger_v therein_o notwithstanding_o my_o trouble_n be_v very_o great_a that_o my_o lord_n shall_v be_v term_v a_o deceiver_n in_o be_v worse_o than_o his_o word_n after_o which_o a_o considerable_a time_n i_o hear_v of_o the_o earthquake_n and_o the_o city_n of_o the_o nation_n fall_v i_o think_v it_o my_o best_a way_n to_o take_v the_o lord_n advice_n and_o search_v the_o scripture_n with_o more_o diligence_n than_o ever_o and_o i_o earnest_o beseech_v the_o lord_n with_o prayer_n that_o he_o will_v inlighten_v my_o understanding_n therein_o and_o bless_v be_v god_n he_o have_v grant_v my_o request_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o have_v find_v out_o these_o several_a place_n the_o which_o be_v and_o will_v be_v stand_v witness_n to_o my_o lord_n to_o prove_v that_o he_o have_v not_o falsify_v his_o word_n to_o we_o in_o the_o promise_n of_o his_o come_v but_o that_o he_o will_v certain_o come_v in_o this_o generation_n who_o come_v be_v just_a at_o hand_n which_o will_v be_v the_o day_n in_o which_o christ_n will_v judge_n the_o world_n and_o give_v reward_n to_o his_o servant_n at_o which_o time_n there_o will_v be_v none_o of_o these_o corruption_n for_o st._n paul_n and_o esaras_n say_v they_o shall_v be_v change_v 2_o esd_v 6.26,27_o the_o man_n that_o be_v receive_v shall_v see_v it_o who_o have_v not_o taste_v death_n from_o their_o birth_n and_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n shall_v be_v change_v and_o turn_v into_o another_o meaning_n for_o evil_n shall_v be_v put_v out_o deceit_n shall_v be_v quench_v as_o for_o faith_n it_o shall_v flourish_v and_o corruption_n shall_v be_v overcome_v and_o truth_n which_o have_v be_v so_o long_o without_o fruit_n shall_v be_v declare_v then_o will_v the_o say_n of_o the_o angel_n to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v make_v good_a concern_v christ_n as_o in_o luke_n 1.32,33_o he_o shall_v be_v great_a and_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o the_o high_a and_o the_o lord_n god_n shall_v give_v unto_o he_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o father_n david_n and_o he_o shall_v reign_v over_o the_o house_n of_o jacob_n for_o ever_o and_o of_o his_o kingdom_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n now_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o father_n david_n be_v on_o mount_n zion_n and_o jerusalem_n and_o christ_n say_v to_o nathanael_n in_o john_n 1.51_o hereafter_o you_o shall_v see_v heaven_n open_a and_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n ascend_v and_o descend_v upon_o the_o son_n of_o man._n when_o this_o eminent_a glory_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v reveal_v then_o also_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v the_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o in_o ephes_n 2.7_o that_o in_o the_o age_n to_o come_v he_o may_v show_v the_o exceed_a riches_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o his_o kindness_n towards_o we_o through_o christ_n jesus_n this_o exceed_a riches_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n will_v be_v manifest_v towards_o they_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v of_o which_o world_n to_o come_v shall_v proceed_v age_n and_o generation_n and_o god_n say_v of_o israel_n in_o isa_n 45.17,18_o israel_n shall_v be_v save_v in_o the_o lord_n with_o a_o everlasting_a salvation_n you_o shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a nor_o confound_v world_n without_o end_n for_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n that_o create_v the_o heaven_n god_n himself_o that_o form_v the_o earth_n and_o make_v it_o he_o have_v establish_v it_o he_o create_v it_o not_o in_o vain_a he_o form_v it_o to_o be_v inhabit_v i_o be_o the_o lord_n and_o there_o be_v none_o else_o and_o st._n paul_n instruct_v the_o church_n by_o timothy_n say_v 1_o tim._n 6.19_o that_o they_o do_v good_a that_o they_o be_v rich_a in_o good_a work_n ready_a to_o distribute_v willing_a to_o communicate_v lay_v up_o in_o store_n for_o themselves_o a_o good_a foundation_n against_o the_o time_n to_o come_v that_o they_o may_v lay_v hold_n on_o eternal_a life_n we_o see_v here_o be_v another_o time_n speak_v of_o and_o if_o its_o time_n it_o be_v then_o before_o eternity_n and_o so_o before_o the_o final_a judgement_n wherein_o it_o be_v say_v the_o sea_n hell_n and_o death_n shall_v deliver_v up_o their_o dead_a and_o whereas_o there_o be_v speak_v of_o three_o generation_n and_o three_o world_n and_o three_o time_n the_o which_o three_o way_n of_o express_v include_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o that_o there_o will_v be_v a_o time_n wherein_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o righteous_a shall_v be_v reveal_v as_o there_o have_v be_v time_n wherein_o they_o have_v be_v despise_v and_o therefore_o st._n paul_n say_v rom._n 8.18,19,20,21,22_o but_o i_o reckon_v that_o the_o suffering_n of_o this_o present_a time_n be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o glory_n which_o shall_v be_v reveal_v in_o we_o 19_o for_o the_o earnest_a expectation_n of_o the_o creature_n wait_v for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 20._o for_o the_o creature_n be_v make_v subject_a to_o vanity_n not_o willing_o but_o by_o reason_n of_o he_o who_o have_v subject_v the_o same_o in_o hope_n 21._o because_o the_o creature_n itself_o also_o shall_v be_v deliver_v from_o the_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n into_o the_o glorious_a liberty_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n 22._o for_o we_o know_v that_o the_o whole_a creation_n groan_v and_o travel_v in_o pain_n together_o until_o now_o here_o the_o apostle_n speak_v in_o the_o usual_a scripture_n way_n in_o that_o he_o mention_n that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v as_o though_o it_o be_v then_o present_a the_o which_o by_o his_o follow_a word_n he_o do_v so_o explain_v himself_o as_o in_o the_o 23._o v._n where_o he_o say_v and_o not_o only_o they_o but_o ourselves_o also_o which_o have_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n even_o we_o ourselves_o groan_n within_o ourselves_o wait_v for_o the_o adoption_n to_o wit_n the_o redemption_n of_o our_o body_n 24._o for_o we_o be_v save_v by_o hope_n but_o hope_v that_o be_v see_v be_v not_o hope_n for_o what_o a_o man_n see_v why_o do_v he_o hope_v for_o 25._o but_o if_o we_o hope_v for_o that_o we_o see_v not_o then_o do_v we_o with_o patience_n wait_v for_o it_o as_o concern_v this_o hope_n the_o lord_n put_v forth_o the_o parable_n in_o luke_n 19.12,16,17_o he_o say_v therefore_o a_o certain_a noble_a man_n go_v out_o into_o a_o far_a country_n to_o receive_v for_o himself_o a_o kingdom_n and_o to_o return_v by_o this_o we_o see_v the_o lord_n be_v to_o return_v again_o when_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o power_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o then_o he_o will_v give_v here_o reward_n to_o his_o servant_n according_a to_o their_o diligence_n employ_v in_o his_o service_n as_o in_o the_o 16._o and_o 17._o v._n then_o come_v the_o first_o say_v lord_n thy_o pound_n have_v gain_v ten_o pound_n and_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o well_o thou_o good_a servant_n because_o thou_o have_v be_v faithful_a in_o a_o very_a little_a have_v thou_o authority_n over_o ten_o cites_n and_o here_o we_o see_v according_a to_o the_o improvement_n of_o the_o talon_n he_o give_v we_o so_o will_v his_o reward_n be_v for_o the_o god_n of_o judgement_n will_v not_o be_v such_o a_o partial_a judge_n as_o some_o have_v think_v he_o but_o the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o world_n will_v do_v right_a now_o by_o the_o parable_n that_o the_o lord_n put_v forth_o concern_v the_o wedding_n
many_o more_o as_o i_o before_o show_v you_o and_o that_o in_o those_o prophecy_n there_o be_v great_a distance_n of_o time_n between_o their_o accomplishment_n although_o it_o be_v set_v down_o as_o though_o they_o be_v so_o near_o together_o now_o christ_n have_v leave_v it_o clear_a to_o we_o by_o the_o event_n that_o the_o world_n be_v not_o destroy_v when_o jerusalem_n be_v whereby_o it_o make_v it_o plain_a to_o our_o apprehension_n that_o those_o prophecy_n have_v a_o far_a meaning_n than_o what_o the_o first_o part_n make_v out_o and_o what_o have_v not_o be_v make_v good_a it_o remain_v to_o be_v make_v good_a 2_o esdras_n 13.29,30,31,32,33,34,35,36,37_o behold_v the_o day_n come_v when_o the_o most_o high_a will_v begin_v to_o deliver_v they_o that_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n 30._o v._n he_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o astonishment_n of_o they_o that_o dwell_v on_o the_o earth_n 31._o and_o one_o shall_v undertake_v to_o fight_v against_o another_o one_o city_n against_o another_o one_o place_n against_o another_o one_o people_n against_o another_o one_o realm_n against_o another_o 32._o v._n and_o the_o time_n shall_v be_v and_o the_o sign_n shall_v happen_v and_o then_o shall_v my_o son_n be_v declare_v who_o thou_o see_v as_o a_o man_n ascend_v 33._o v._n and_o when_o all_o the_o people_n hear_v his_o voice_n every_o man_n shall_v in_o their_o own_o land_n leave_v the_o battle_n they_o have_v one_o against_o another_o 34._o v._n and_o a_o innumerable_a multitude_n shall_v be_v gather_v together_o as_o thou_o see_v they_o willing_a to_o come_v and_o overcome_v he_o by_o fight_v 36._o v._n but_o he_o shall_v stand_v upon_o the_o top_n of_o mount_n zion_n and_o zion_n shall_v come_v and_o shall_v be_v show_v to_o all_o man_n be_v prepare_v and_o build_v like_a as_o thou_o see_v the_o hill_n grave_v without_o hand_n 37._o v._n and_o this_o my_o son_n shall_v rebuke_v the_o wicked_a invention_n of_o those_o nation_n which_o for_o their_o wicked_a life_n be_v fall_v into_o the_o tempest_n now_o without_o all_o doubt_n this_o fight_v be_v so_o term_v as_o jacob_n prayer_n be_v wrestle_a when_o he_o prevail_v with_o the_o angel_n but_o these_o will_v not_o have_v such_o success_n but_o when_o they_o see_v the_o glory_n they_o will_v immediate_o leave_v the_o battle_n they_o have_v one_o against_o the_o other_o think_v to_o overcome_v the_o lord_n by_o their_o prayer_n but_o than_o it_o will_v be_v too_o late_o for_o they_o for_o than_o they_o must_v be_v judge_v according_a to_o their_o deed_n do_v in_o their_o body_n for_o than_o he_o will_v lay_v before_o they_o all_o their_o wicked_a invention_n now_o it_o do_v certain_o appear_v that_o this_o be_v the_o battle_n that_o be_v to_o be_v fight_v by_o every_o particular_a and_o also_o this_o war_n that_o be_v now_o be_v produce_v by_o those_o that_o be_v set_v down_o in_o rev._n 16_o 13._o and_o i_o see_v three_o unclean_a spirit_n like_o frog_n come_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o dragon_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o false_a prophet_n 14._o v._n for_o they_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o devil_n work_v miracle_n which_o go_v forth_o unto_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o gather_v they_o to_o the_o battle_n of_o that_o great_a day_n of_o god_n almighty_n 15._o v._n behold_v i_o come_v as_o a_o thief_n bless_v be_v he_o that_o watch_v and_o keep_v his_o garment_n lest_o he_o walk_v naked_a and_o they_o see_v his_o shame_n now_o this_o war_n proceed_v from_o the_o devil_n the_o beast_n and_o false_a prophet_n who_o have_v draw_v in_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n with_o they_o so_o as_o the_o devil_n by_o his_o unclean_a spirit_n have_v set_v all_o the_o world_n in_o a_o uproar_v as_o in_o esdras_n now_o we_o be_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o joel_n where_o he_o say_v joel_n 3.2_o i_o will_v also_o gather_v all_o nation_n and_o will_v bring_v they_o down_o into_o the_o valley_n of_o jehoshaphat_n and_o will_v plead_v with_o they_o there_o for_o my_o people_n and_o for_o my_o heritage_n israel_n who_o they_o have_v scatter_v among_o the_o nation_n and_o part_v my_o land_n now_o in_o scripture_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v to_o you_o all_o do_v not_o signify_v the_o whole_a and_o so_o the_o word_n here_o make_v out_o in_o that_o the_o lord_n say_v he_o will_v plead_v with_o they_o there_o for_o his_o people_n and_o for_o his_o heritage_n israel_n who_o they_o have_v scatter_v and_o part_v his_o land_n now_o we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v but_o part_n of_o the_o nation_n that_o be_v guilty_a of_o so_o do_v therefore_o just_a at_o that_o time_n there_o may_v be_v but_o that_o part_n judged_n and_o the_o word_n in_o the_o 12._o v._n make_v it_o further_o so_o appear_v for_o the_o lord_n there_o say_v let_v the_o heathen_a be_v waken_v and_o come_v up_o to_o the_o valley_n of_o jehoshaphat_n for_o there_o will_v i_o sit_v to_o judge_n all_o the_o heathen_a round_o about_o that_o be_v thus_o all_o the_o heathen_a round_o about_o that_o have_v israel_n land_n in_o possession_n and_o do_v lord_n it_o over_o they_o for_o those_o of_o the_o heathen_a that_o be_v here_o judge_v be_v all_o condemn_v as_o it_o be_v clear_a in_o the_o two_o follow_a verse_n and_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n they_o shall_v have_v a_o time_n of_o torment_n here_o before_o they_o be_v cast_v into_o hell_n now_o in_o that_o they_o be_v all_o here_o term_v heathen_n be_v according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o say_n of_o st_n paul_n he_o be_v not_o a_o jew_n that_o be_v one_o outward_o so_o they_o be_v not_o christistian_n that_o only_o outward_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n as_o papist_n do_v neither_o do_v they_o know_v god_n which_o the_o turk_n pretend_v to_o do_v yet_o in_o work_n deny_v he_o and_o worship_n mahomet_n therefore_o these_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n appear_v as_o the_o worst_a of_o heathen_n neither_o can_v th●se_a 〈◊〉_d be_v express_v so_o well_o under_o any_o other_o 〈◊〉_d be_v a_o multitude_n of_o incorrigible_a sinner_n but_o some_o time_n comprehend_v under_o the_o title_n of_o esau_n now_o by_o these_o heathen_n there_o be_v none_o of_o those_o nation_n comprehend_v which_o the_o lord_n will_v call_v in_o at_o his_o come_n because_o that_o they_o be_v all_o condemn_v but_o i_o hope_v the_o almighty_a god_n have_v at_o this_o time_n set_v our_o king_n among_o they_o that_o he_o may_v be_v the_o awakener_n of_o ten_o thousand_o time_n ten_o thousand_o of_o they_o and_o i_o hope_v every_o think_v soul_n will_v consider_v what_o god_n be_v go_v about_o to_o do_v so_o as_o to_o prepare_v for_o his_o come_n and_o since_o we_o have_v be_v all_o in_o great_a mistake_n we_o may_v the_o better_a pity_n and_o pray_v the_o one_o for_o the_o other_o now_o the_o time_n be_v just_a at_o hand_n for_o this_o be_v the_o exact_a battle_n that_o be_v describe_v with_o the_o earthquake_n that_o have_v be_v in_o divers_a place_n and_o the_o city_n of_o the_o nation_n fall_v with_o the_o continual_a whirlwind_n mention_v in_o jeremiah_n 30.23,24_o at_o the_o time_n that_o israel_n be_v to_o be_v restore_v god_n say_v in_o the_o 23._o v._o behold_v the_o whirlwind_n of_o the_o lord_n go_v forth_o with_o fury_n a_o continue_a whirlwind_n it_o shall_v fall_v with_o pain_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o wicked_a 24._o the_o fierce_a anger_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v not_o return_v until_o he_o have_v do_v it_o and_o until_o he_o have_v perform_v the_o intent_n of_o his_o heart_n in_o the_o latter_a day_n you_o shall_v consider_v it_o and_o now_o it_o be_v these_o whirlwind_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v go_v forth_o for_o war_n and_o afflictious_a be_v by_o the_o lord_n term_v wind_n as_o in_o jer._n 51.1_o and_o also_o the_o great_a stupidity_n that_o be_v at_o this_o day_n upon_o the_o people_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o isa_n 29._o the_o which_o be_v whole_o direct_v unto_o the_o christian_n as_o all_o the_o follow_a part_n of_o the_o chapter_n from_o the_o four_o ver_fw-la make_v appear_v and_o the_o lord_n at_o this_o time_n by_o weak_a mean_n make_v good_a that_o promise_v in_o daniel_n 12.4_o but_o thou_o o_o daniel_n shut_v up_o the_o word_n and_o seal_v the_o book_n even_o till_o the_o time_n of_o the_o end_n many_o shall_v run_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o knowledge_n shall_v be_v increase_v now_o the_o lord_n have_v open_v his_o word_n whereby_o knowledge_n may_v be_v increase_v and_o this_o he_o have_v do_v by_o weak_a mean_n that_o his_o glory_n may_v the_o more_o eminent_o appear_v and_o
have_v commit_v he_o shall_v die_v for_o it_o according_a to_o this_o be_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n where_o he_o say_v he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o shall_v be_v save_v the_o which_o word_n include_v no_o long_o than_o they_o so_o continue_v believe_v which_o belief_n must_v be_v a_o practical_a belief_n the_o which_o be_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o his_o word_n so_o as_o to_o live_v in_o obedience_n thereunto_o for_o it_o be_v say_v without_o holiness_n no_o man_n shall_v see_v the_o lord_n and_o between_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n it_o be_v hard_o to_o make_v a_o distinction_n but_o as_o to_o what_o the_o lord_n say_v john_n 5.24_o be_v speak_v for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v when_o god_n shall_v have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n to_o the_o son_n for_o which_o time_n this_o be_v speak_v that_o be_v those_o that_o then_o shall_v be_v find_v believer_n be_v then_o pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n so_o as_o they_o shall_v never_o come_v into_o condemnation_n and_o as_o for_o the_o sheep_n that_o so_o secure_o stand_v of_o who_o christ_n say_v none_o can_v pluck_v they_o out_o of_o my_o father_n hand_n be_v speak_v of_o those_o that_o be_v christ_n stand_a witness_n through_o the_o world_n they_o be_v those_o very_a elect_a of_o who_o christ_n say_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o deceive_v and_o of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o revelation_n they_o follow_v the_o lamb_n wheresoever_o he_o go_v this_o be_v clear_o prove_v where_o i_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o very_a elect_n i_o do_v but_o here_o mention_v it_o that_o thereby_o we_o may_v know_v that_o we_o do_v not_o so_o secure_o stand_v but_o as_o st._n paul_n say_v in_o hebrew_n we_o like_o israel_n have_v a_o promise_n of_o enter_v into_o life_n shall_v take_v heed_n lest_o any_o of_o we_o shall_v shall_fw-mi short_a of_o enter_v into_o that_o promise_a rest_n therefore_o he_o advise_v we_o to_o make_v our_o call_v and_o election_n sure_a and_o christ_n also_o invite_v sinner_n to_o come_v to_o repentance_n and_o if_o we_o be_v not_o want_v to_o ourselves_o christ_n will_v not_o be_v want_v to_o we_o and_o by_o the_o watchman_n warn_v there_o may_v be_v great_a part_n of_o the_o people_n save_v from_o the_o near_o approach_a danger_n by_o what_o god_n say_v in_o ezekiel_n for_o there_o be_v but_o few_o soldier_n but_o when_o they_o have_v the_o warning_n give_v they_o but_o they_o will_v seek_v to_o deliver_v themselves_o and_o god_n say_v in_o ezekiel_n 33.5_o he_o that_o take_v warning_n shall_v deliver_v his_o soul_n methinks_v this_o promise_n shall_v make_v we_o with_o life_n and_o vigour_n laborious_a to_o gain_v life_n for_o our_o soul_n so_o as_o we_o may_v be_v deliver_v from_o the_o near_o approach_a danger_n for_o that_o we_o be_v in_o the_o time_n in_o which_o the_o lord_n will_v come_v be_v certain_a the_o which_o time_n will_v be_v according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n with_o sign_n and_o wonder_n the_o which_o we_o have_v see_v what_o the_o lord_n foretell_v shall_v be_v before_o his_o come_n and_o now_o with_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n vision_n make_v good_a to_o we_o so_o that_o knowledge_n shall_v be_v increase_v by_o the_o unseal_n of_o the_o book_n at_o the_o now_o time_n of_o the_o end_n the_o which_o will_v occasion_v great_a run_v to_o and_o fro_o so_o as_o knowledge_n may_v be_v increase_v to_o prepare_v for_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n according_a to_o which_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o luke_n 14.17_o that_o he_o send_v forth_o his_o servant_n at_o supper_n time_n to_o say_v to_o they_o that_o be_v bid_v come_v for_o all_o thing_n be_v now_o ready_a the_o which_o give_v we_o also_o certain_a information_n that_o light_n shall_v break_v forth_o as_o thereby_o warning_n shall_v be_v give_v for_o preparation_n to_o be_v make_v for_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o judge_n the_o world_n and_o give_v reward_n to_o the_o righteous_a the_o old_a world_n have_v by_o noah_n warn_v give_v they_o who_o the_o scripture_n term_n a_o preacher_n of_o righteousness_n but_o because_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v and_o amend_v therefore_o they_o be_v destroy_v and_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o mat._n 25.6_o at_o midnight_n there_o be_v a_o cry_n make_v behold_v the_o bridegroom_n come_v go_v you_o out_o to_o meet_v he_o which_o show_v in_o midst_n of_o the_o night_n of_o darkness_n as_o to_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o light_n will_v break_v forth_o so_o as_o the_o cry_n of_o the_o voice_n of_o his_o minister_n may_v be_v hear_v to_o warn_v the_o people_n for_o to_o prepare_v to_o meet_v the_o bridegroom_n yet_o upon_o the_o wicked_a unbelieve_a world_n it_o will_v come_v as_o a_o thief_n in_o the_o night_n and_o also_o as_o to_o the_o day_n and_o hour_n no_o man_n know_v now_o whereas_o god_n say_v in_o isaiah_n that_o that_o day_n shall_v come_v as_o a_o snare_n upon_o all_o flesh_n yet_o as_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v the_o word_n all_o in_o scripture_n do_v not_o signify_v the_o whole_a but_o the_o major_a part_n now_o as_o to_o what_o be_v faid_fw-we in_o rev._n 14.6_o and_o i_o see_v another_o angel_n fly_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o heaven_n have_v the_o everlasting_a gospel_n to_o preach_v unto_o they_o that_o dwell_v on_o the_o earth_n to_o every_o nation_n tongue_n and_o people_n 7._o say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n fear_v god_n give_v glory_n to_o he_o for_o the_o hour_n of_o his_o judgement_n be_v come_v and_o worship_v he_o that_o make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n the_o sea_n and_o the_o fountain_n of_o water_n this_o appear_v to_o be_v after_o the_o lord_n come_v in_o the_o cloud_n with_o his_o saint_n and_o angel_n and_o that_o as_o the_o christian_n that_o be_v before_o bid_v and_o send_v to_o by_o his_o servant_n at_o supper_n time_n to_o come_v to_o his_o supper_n so_o it_o do_v appear_v that_o those_o that_o know_v he_o not_o may_v afterward_o be_v invite_v by_o the_o angel_n by_o which_o mean_v israel_n and_o the_o promise_a elect_n may_v be_v bring_v in_o for_o john_n baptist_n first_o preach_v christ_n to_o the_o jew_n before_o he_o be_v make_v public_a to_o the_o world_n afterward_o when_o he_o be_v make_v public_a the_o lord_n send_v his_o disciple_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o gentile_n now_o this_o being_n most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n and_o what_o i_o apprehend_v it_o will_v be_v but_o however_o the_o minister_n may_v press_v forward_o for_o a_o publication_n of_o the_o gospel_n every_o where_n but_o if_o they_o find_v not_o bless_a success_n to_o forbear_v and_o to_o bestow_v their_o labour_n among_o the_o christian_n and_o turk_n and_o such_o as_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n who_o must_v stand_v or_o fall_v as_o their_o master_n find_v they_o but_o as_o for_o the_o jew_n and_o promise_a elect_n if_o they_o come_v not_o in_o they_o will_v be_v sure_a to_o be_v receive_v into_o mercy_n after_o the_o lord_n come_v as_o many_o as_o have_v not_o estrange_v themselves_o from_o god_n by_o wicked_a practice_n now_o whereas_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o daniel_n 12.11_o and_o from_o the_o time_n the_o daily_a sacrifice_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o and_o the_o abomination_n that_o make_v desolate_a set_v up_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o and_o ninety_o day_n and_o in_o the_o follow_a verse_n it_o be_v say_v bless_a be_v he_o that_o wait_v and_o come_v to_o the_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o and_o five_o and_o thirty_o day_n here_o be_v 45_o day_n of_o year_n difference_n between_o this_o and_o the_o forementioned_a number_n and_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o be_v bless_v that_o wait_v and_o come_v to_o the_o last_o number_n of_o the_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o and_o five_o and_o thirty_o day_n now_o this_o be_v the_o exact_a number_n of_o year_n israel_n know_v after_o they_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o egypt_n before_o they_o have_v conquer_a their_o enemy_n so_o as_o to_o be_v settle_v in_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n for_o they_o lie_v forty_o year_n in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o five_o year_n they_o be_v conquer_a their_o enemy_n before_o they_o peaceable_o settle_v in_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n now_o the_o like_a time_n be_v mention_v in_o daniel_n whereby_o it_o do_v appear_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o visible_a sign_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v come_v till_o the_o time_n he_o come_v and_o also_o until_o the_o time_n that_o all_o the_o wicked_a be_v cut_v of_o do_v seem_v to_o be_v the_o exact_a number_n of_o year_n because_o the_o lord_n say_v he_o that_o wait_v and_o come_v to_o the_o five_o and_o forty_o day_n of_o year_n beyond_o the_o forementioned_a number_n be_v say_v to_o be_v bless_v which_o argue_v by_o
have_v give_v he_o authority_n to_o execute_v judgement_n also_o because_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n we_o see_v all_o along_o here_o that_o the_o lord_n speak_v of_o his_o power_n and_o judgement_n when_o he_o again_o come_v and_o again_o he_o say_v marvel_v not_o at_o this_o for_o the_o hour_n be_v come_v in_o which_o all_o that_o be_v in_o their_o grave_n shall_v hear_v his_o voice_n and_o shall_v come_v forth_o they_o that_o have_v do_v good_a unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o life_n and_o they_o that_o have_v do_v evil_a unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o damnation_n here_o the_o lord_n speak_v in_o the_o scripture_n way_n of_o speak_v in_o that_o he_o so_o near_o join_v his_o come_n to_o judge_v the_o world_n with_o that_o last_o judgement_n like_o that_o of_o his_o join_v the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o of_o the_o world_n together_o according_a to_o which_o all_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o join_v now_o these_o two_o judgement_n be_v clear_o to_o distinct_a thing_n for_o in_o the_o first_o it_o be_v say_v the_o dead_a shall_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o it_o be_v those_o that_o do_v hear_v do_v live_v therefore_o this_o be_v at_o the_o first_o resurrection_n when_o the_o lord_n again_o come_v at_o which_o time_n all_o the_o promised_a elect_n shall_v be_v call_v in_o who_o he_o have_v promise_v mercy_n and_o with_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o live_v and_o the_o other_o be_v the_o eternal_a judgement_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o revelation_n where_o it_o be_v say_v the_o sea_n and_o death_n and_o hell_n deliver_v up_o the_o dead_a as_o to_o what_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o john_n 5._o from_o the_o 20._o v._o to_o the_o 29._o v._o the_o lord_n there_o speak_v of_o the_o two_o judgement_n as_o i_o have_v elsewhere_o prove_v to_o you_o and_o therefore_o what_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 24._o v._n be_v concern_v they_o that_o be_v believer_n at_o his_o come_n that_o they_o have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o come_v into_o condemnation_n but_o where_o the_o lord_n say_v 6.47_o john_n 6.47_o very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o i_o have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o the_o apostle_n also_o say_v 5.11,12,13_o 1_o john_n 5.11,12,13_o this_o be_v the_o record_n that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o eternal_a life_n and_o this_o life_n be_v in_o his_o son_n he_o that_o have_v the_o son_n have_v life_n and_o he_o that_o have_v not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v not_o life_n these_o thing_n have_v i_o write_v unto_o you_o that_o believe_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o you_o have_v eternal_a life_n that_o be_v god_n have_v renew_v we_o in_o christ_n and_o give_v we_o eternal_a life_n by_o he_o if_o we_o be_v true_a believer_n and_o what_o that_o belief_n be_v that_o be_v require_v of_o we_o i_o have_v elsewhere_o prove_v to_o you_o but_o the_o everlasting_a life_n that_o be_v give_v the_o believer_n be_v as_o it_o be_v give_v adam_n in_o paradise_n the_o which_o be_v as_o long_o as_o he_o continue_v in_o his_o obedience_n and_o so_o it_o be_v with_o we_o the_o which_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v full_o explain_v where_o he_o say_v 8.51_o john_n 8.51_o very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o if_o a_o man_n keep_v my_o say_n he_o shall_v never_o see_v death_n and_o christ_n say_v again_o 15.9,10,11,12_o john_n 15.9,10,11,12_o as_o the_o father_n have_v love_v i_o so_o have_v i_o love_v you_o continue_v you_o in_o my_o love_n if_o you_o keep_v my_o commandment_n you_o shall_v abide_v in_o my_o love_n even_o as_o i_o keep_v my_o father_n commandment_n and_o abide_v in_o his_o love_n these_o thing_n have_v i_o speak_v unto_o you_o that_o my_o joy_n may_v remain_v in_o you_o and_o that_o your_o joy_n may_v be_v full_a this_o be_v my_o commandment_n that_o you_o love_v one_o another_o as_o i_o have_v love_v you_o by_o all_o this_o we_o plain_o see_v that_o the_o eternal_a life_n give_v the_o believer_n be_v they_o no_o long_o than_o they_o persist_v in_o their_o obedience_n so_o adam_n eternal_a life_n that_o he_o have_v give_v he_o in_o paradise_n be_v lose_v by_o his_o offend_n for_o have_v he_o persist_v in_o his_o obedience_n he_o have_v never_o dye_v and_o as_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v to_o you_o that_o if_o we_o be_v regenerate_v so_o as_o our_o will_n be_v bring_v over_o into_o a_o entire_a resignation_n of_o ourselves_o to_o god_n and_o christ_n than_o we_o be_v accept_v of_o he_o and_o then_o be_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n impute_v to_o we_o but_o it_o be_v afterward_o there_o come_v a_o day_n of_o trial_n either_o by_o temptation_n or_o affliction_n or_o a_o cloudy_a dark_a day_n may_v overtake_v we_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v best_o for_o every_o true_a christian_a to_o arm_n themselves_o for_o the_o worst_a that_o they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v in_o the_o evil_a day_n so_o whilst_o we_o continue_v in_o our_o obedience_n the_o perfect_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n be_v impute_v to_o we_o and_o then_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v be_v we_o complete_a in_o he_o and_o afterward_o what_o sin_n be_v not_o wilful_o commit_v will_v not_o destroy_v we_o because_o christ_n be_v our_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n 2.1_o 1_o joh._n 2.1_o but_o let_v he_o that_o stand_v take_v heed_n lest_o he_o fall_v and_o st._n john_n say_v 3.6,7,8_o 1_o john_n 3.6,7,8_o whosoever_o abide_v in_o he_o sin_v not_o whosoever_o sin_v have_v not_o see_v he_o that_o be_v they_o give_v themselves_o no_o liberty_n to_o sin_n and_o what_o be_v not_o willing_o commit_v be_v not_o impute_v little_a child_n let_v no_o man_n deceive_v you_o he_o that_o do_v righteousness_n be_v righteous_a even_o as_o he_o be_v righteous_a that_o be_v if_o we_o continue_v in_o well-doing_n as_o i_o before_o show_v we_o have_v the_o perfect_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n impute_v to_o we_o for_o it_o be_v say_v we_o be_v complete_a in_o he_o he_o that_o commit_v sin_n be_v of_o the_o devil_n for_o the_o devil_n sin_v from_o the_o beginning_n for_o this_o purpose_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v manifest_a that_o be_v may_v destroy_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n that_o be_v he_o that_o wilful_o commit_v sin_n be_v of_o the_o devil_n for_o the_o devil_n commit_v no_o sin_n but_o what_o he_o commit_v wilful_o and_o the_o apostle_n say_v 1.6,7,8,9_o 1_o john_n 1.6,7,8,9_o if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v fellowship_n with_o he_o and_o walk_v in_o darkness_n we_o lie_v and_o do_v not_o the_o truth_n but_o if_o we_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o light_n we_o have_v fellowship_n one_o with_o another_o and_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n this_o be_v that_o which_o make_v we_o appear_v clean_a and_o white_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n but_o he_o say_v again_o if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o we_o for_o we_o can_v live_v without_o sin_n as_o sin_n of_o infirmity_n and_o sin_n of_o ignorance_n and_o too_o often_o overtake_v in_o the_o sin_n of_o negligence_n and_o sometime_o overtake_v with_o the_o sin_n of_o surprisal_n therefore_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 9_o v._n if_o we_o confess_v our_o sin_n he_o be_v faithful_a and_o just_a to_o forgive_v we_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o unrighteouness_n that_o be_v all_o our_o unrighteousness_n upon_o our_o conversion_n be_v forgive_v if_o we_o seek_v to_o god_n by_o confession_n and_o contrition_n and_o whereas_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o mat._n 5.46,47,48_o for_o if_o you_o love_v they_o which_o love_v you_o what_o reward_n have_v you_o do_v not_o even_o the_o publican_n the_o same_o and_o if_o you_o salute_v your_o brethren_n only_o what_o do_v you_o more_o than_o other_o do_v not_o even_o the_o publican_n so_o be_v you_o therefore_o perfect_a even_o as_o your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n be_v perfect_a that_o be_v be_v you_o perfect_a or_o sincere_a in_o your_o love_n to_o other_o as_o god_n be_v sincere_a or_o perfect_a in_o his_o love_n to_o you_o in_o that_o he_o give_v the_o son_n of_o his_o love_n for_o you_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n and_o in_o luke_n 17.5,6_o and_o the_o apostle_n say_v unto_o the_o lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n and_o the_o lord_n say_v if_o you_o have_v faith_n as_o a_o grain_n of_o mustardseed_n you_o may_v say_v to_o this_o sycamine_n tree_n be_v thou_o pluck_v up_o by_o the_o root_n and_o be_v thou_o plant_v in_o the_o sea_n and_o it_o shall_v obey_v you_o
that_o you_o walk_v not_o in_o the_o ignorance_n of_o youthfulness_n and_o fornication_n wherein_o i_o over_o shoot_v myself_o and_o defile_v the_o bed_n of_o my_o father_n jacob._n for_o i_o assure_v you_o that_o the_o lord_n do_v therefore_o strke_v i_o with_o a_o sore_a plague_n in_o my_o flank_n the_o space_n of_o seven_o month_n and_o i_o have_v perish_v if_o my_o father_n jacob_n have_v not_o pray_v to_o the_o lord_n for_o i_o because_o he_o be_v mind_v to_o have_v slay_v i_o i_o be_v thirty_o year_n old_a when_o i_o do_v this_o evil_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o seven_o month_n be_v i_o sick_a to_o death_n and_o with_o a_o free_a heart_n do_v i_o afflict_v myself_o seven_o year_n before_o the_o lord_n i_o drink_v no_o wine_n nor_o strong_a drink_n no_o flesh_n come_v within_o my_o mouth_n i_o taste_v not_o any_o fine_a bread_n but_o i_o mourn_v fot_o my_o sin_n for_o it_o be_v great_a and_o there_o shall_v none_o such_o be_v do_v in_o israel_n and_o my_o son_n hear_v i_o that_o i_o may_v show_v you_o what_o i_o see_v concern_v the_o seven_o spirit_n of_o error_n in_o my_o repentance_n belial_n give_v seven_o spirit_n against_o a_o man_n which_o be_v the_o well-spring_n of_o youthful_a work_n seven_o spirit_n be_v give_v a_o man_n in_o his_o creation_n whereby_o all_o his_o work_n be_v door_n the_o first_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o life_n wherewith_o be_v create_v his_o be_v the_o second_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o see_v wherewith_o come_v lust_a the_o three_o the_o spirit_n of_o hear_v wherewith_o come_v learning_n the_o four_o the_o spirit_n of_o smell_a wherewith_o come_v delight_n by_o draw_v of_o the_o air_n and_o breathe_v it_o out_o again_o the_o five_o i_o the_o spirit_n of_o speech_n wherewith_o knowledge_n be_v make_v the_o six_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o taste_v whereof_o come_v the_o feed_n upon_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v eat_v and_o drink_v and_o through_o they_o be_v engender_v strength_n the_o seven_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o seed_n and_o generation_n wherewith_o enter_v in_o the_o lust_n of_o pleasute_n fot_o this_o cause_n it_o be_v the_o last_o of_o creation_n and_o the_o first_o of_o youth_n because_o it_o be_v full_a of_o ignorance_n and_o ignorance_n lead_v the_o young_a sot_n as_o a_o blind_a body_n into_o the_o ditch_n and_o as_o a_o ox_n to_o the_o stall_n among_o all_o these_o be_v the_o eight_o which_o be_v of_o sleep_n with_o who_o be_v create_v the_o waste_n away_o of_o nature_n and_o the_o image_n of_o death_n with_o these_o spirit_n be_v mingle_v the_o spirit_n of_o error_n whereof_o the_o first_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o lechery_n who_o lie_v within_o the_o nature_n and_o sense_n of_o a_o man_n the_o second_o spirit_n of_o unsatiableness_n lie_v in_o the_o belly_n the_o three_o spirit_n of_o strife_n lie_v in_o the_o liver_n and_o in_o choler_n the_o four_o syirit_n be_v of_o bravery_n and_o gallantness_n that_o the_o party_n may_v seem_v comely_a by_o excess_n the_o five_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o pride_n which_o make_v a_o man_n to_o mind_n overgreat_a thing_n or_o to_o think_v well_o of_o himself_o and_o the_o six_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o lie_v or_o vain-gloriousness_a in_o boast_v a_o man_n self_n and_o in_o desire_n to_o fill_v his_o talk_n concern_v his_o own_o kindred_n and_o acquaintance_n the_o seven_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o unrighreousness_n which_o stir_v up_o the_o affection_n that_o a_o man_n shall_v perform_v the_o lustful_a pleasure_n of_o his_o heart_n for_o unrighteousness_n work_v with_o all_o the_o other_o spirit_n by_o take_v guile_n unto_o he_o unto_o all_o these_o spirit_n be_v match_v the_o eight_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o sleep_n or_o sluggishness_n in_o error_n and_o imagination_n and_o so_o the_o soul_n of_o young_a folk_n perish_v because_o their_o mind_n be_v darken_v and_o hide_a from_o the_o truth_n and_o udderstand_v not_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n neither_o obey_v the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o father_n as_o befall_v i_o in_o my_o youth_n but_o now_o my_o child_n love_v the_o truth_n and_o that_o shall_v preseve_v you_o for_o fornication_n be_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o soul_n separate_v it_o from_o god_n because_o it_o lead_v the_o mind_n and_o understanding_n into_o error_n for_o whoredom_n have_v undo_v many_o man_n and_o although_o a_o man_n be_v ancient_a or_o noble_a yet_o do_v this_o make_v he_o a_o laugh_a stock_n but_o joseph_n because_o he_o keep_v himself_o from_o all_o woman_n and_o cleanse_v his_o thought_n from_o all_o fornication_n find_v favour_n both_o before_o the_o lord_n and_o men._n therefore_o my_o son_n fly_v fornication_n charge_v your_o wife_n and_o daughter_n that_o they_o trim_v not_o their_o head_n and_o will_v they_o to_o chasten_v their_o look_n for_o every_o woman_n that_o deal_v deceitful_o in_o these_o thing_n be_v reserve_v to_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v that_o be_v to_o the_o sentence_n of_o judgement_n which_o will_v be_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v now_o since_o it_o be_v woman_n that_o be_v first_o in_o the_o transgression_n therefore_o woman_n and_o gentlewoman_n employ_v all_o your_o diligence_n to_o escape_v the_o near_a approach_a judgement_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v now_o whereas_o kuben_n say_v have_v not_o his_o father_n prayer_n prevail_v with_o god_n that_o god_n will_v have_v kill_v he_o yhe_o which_o have_v the_o lord_n then_o take_v he_o off_o where_o will_v then_o have_v be_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v god_n can_v raise_v up_o two_o tribe_n out_o of_o one_o stock_n as_o there_o be_v of_o joseph_n or_o god_n can_v have_v give_v jacob_n another_o son_n in_o his_o stead_n for_o reuben_n do_v at_o time_n lose_v his_o birthright_n and_o eve_n say_v when_o she_o have_v bear_v seth_n that_o god_n have_v give_v she_o another_o seed_n instead_o of_o abel_n who_o cain_n slay_v gen._n 4.25_o and_o god_n say_v unto_o cain_n before_o he_o commit_v that_o murder_n gon._n 4.7_o if_o thou_o do_v well_o shall_v thou_o not_o be_v accept_v and_o if_o thou_o do_v not_o well_o sin_n lie_v at_o the_o door_n and_o also_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o patriarch_n that_o be_v guilty_a of_o that_o sin_n against_o joseph_n they_o at_o their_o death_n declare_v what_o terrible_a affliction_n they_o fall_v under_o for_o that_o sin_n of_o they_o and_o the_o great_a repentance_n they_o have_v for_o it_o and_o judah_n likewise_o give_v a_o account_n of_o his_o affliction_n and_o repentance_n for_o the_o sin_n that_o he_o be_v overtake_v in_o and_o where_o the_o old_a world_n be_v speak_v of_o gen._n 6.3_o the_o lord_n say_v my_o spirit_n shall_v not_o always_o strive_v with_o man_n the_o which_o word_n argue_v the_o strive_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n with_o man_n that_o have_v not_o man_n be_v want_v to_o himself_o but_o have_v use_v his_o utmost_a endeavour_n he_o may_v have_v obtain_v salvation_n for_o although_o after_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n the_o entrance_n into_o life_n be_v make_v straight_o yet_o not_o so_o straight_o but_o with_o labour_n and_o diligence_n through_o the_o promise_a messiah_n it_o be_v and_o be_v attainable_a but_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o five_o verse_n god_n see_v the_o wickedness_n of_o man_n be_v great_a in_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o every_o imagination_n of_o the_o thought_n of_o his_o heart_n be_v only_o evil_a continual_o and_o it_o repent_v the_o lord_n that_o he_o have_v make_v man_n on_o the_o earth_n and_o it_o grieve_v he_o at_o his_o heart_n and_o the_o lord_n say_v i_o will_v destroy_v man_n who_o i_o have_v create_v from_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n both_o man_n and_o beast_n and_o the_o creep_a thing_n and_o the_o fowl_n of_o the_o air_n for_o it_o repent_v i_o that_o i_o have_v make_v they_o but_o noah_n find_v grace_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n noah_n be_v a_o just_a man_n now_o whereas_o the_o lord_n do_v express_v that_o it_o repent_v he_o that_o he_o have_v make_v man_n and_o that_o it_o grieve_v he_o at_o his_o heart_n the_o which_o show_v a_o concern_v in_o god_n that_o man_n have_v not_o then_o live_v up_o to_o his_o decree_n whereby_o his_o mercy_n be_v attainable_a numb_a 23.19,20_o now_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n be_v not_o a_o man_n that_o he_o shall_v lie_v neither_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o he_o shall_v repent_v have_v he_o say_v and_o shall_v he_o not_o do_v it_o or_o have_v he_o speak_v and_o shall_v he_o not_o make_v it_o good_a i_o have_v receive_v commandment_n to_o bless_v and_o he_o have_v bless_v and_o i_o can_v reverse_v it_o now_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n be_v not_o a_o man_n that_o he_o shall_v lie_v neither_o the_o son_n of_o
he_o also_o free_o give_v we_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v god_n will_v free_o give_v we_o all_o thing_n if_o we_o will_v receive_v it_o according_a to_o the_o tender_a of_o his_o grace_n in_o his_o word_n and_o with_o patience_n wait_v for_o it_o as_o these_o do_v and_o whereas_o he_o say_v in_o 33._o v._n who_o shall_v lay_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o god_n elect_n it_o be_v god_n that_o justifi_v 33._o who_o be_v he_o that_o condemn_v it_o be_v christ_n that_o die_v yea_o rather_o that_o be_v rise_v again_o who_o be_v even_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n who_o also_o make_v interessione_n for_o we_o that_o be_v as_o i_o elsewhere_o say_v that_o we_o be_v no_o soon_o convert_v and_o bring_v into_o a_o holy_a resignation_n of_o ourselves_o unto_o god_n but_o we_o be_v accept_v of_o god_n through_o the_o satisfaction_n make_v by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n who_o now_o live_v to_o make_v intercession_n for_o such_o and_o as_o to_o what_o we_o be_v before_o we_o be_v convert_v those_o sin_n will_v not_o be_v lay_v to_o our_o charge_n but_o this_o be_v no_o encouragement_n to_o we_o to_o sin_n and_o defer_v repentance_n for_o those_o roman_n never_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n before_o but_o we_o be_v bear_v child_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o if_o we_o defer_v repentance_n and_o check_v the_o good_a motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o refuse_v to_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o word_n think_v it_o will_v be_v time_n enough_o hereafter_o to_o look_v after_o heaven_n in_o so_o do_v we_o tempt_v god_n to_o leave_v we_o to_o hardness_n of_o heart_n and_o blindness_n of_o mind_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n do_v so_o earnest_o exhort_v the_o hebrew_n to_o day_n whilst_o it_o be_v call_v to_o day_n not_o to_o harden_v their_o heart_n that_o be_v not_o to_o put_v off_o repentance_n till_o to_o morrow_n and_o when_o we_o be_v bring_v home_o to_o christ_n by_o repentance_n and_o resign_v up_o ourselves_o to_o he_o we_o be_v then_o no_o soon_o in_o he_o but_o we_o must_v walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n of_o which_o st._n judas_n put_v in_o remembrance_n judas_n 6.7_o of_o the_o angel_n which_o keep_v not_o their_o first_o estate_n but_o leave_v their_o own_o habitation_n he_o have_v reserve_v in_o everlasting_a chain_n under_o darkness_n unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o great_a day_n even_o as_o sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n and_o the_o city_n about_o they_o in_o like_a manner_n give_v themselves_o over_o to_o fornication_n and_o go_v after_o strange_a flesh_n be_v set_v forth_o for_o a_o example_n suffer_v the_o vengeance_n of_o eternal_a fire_n by_o which_o we_o see_v if_o we_o give_v ourselves_o a_o liberty_n to_o sin_n god_n do_v with_o hold_v his_o restrain_v grace_n from_o we_o and_o so_o through_o sin_n we_o become_v subject_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o whereas_o st._n paul_n say_v rom._n 8.35_o who_o shall_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n shall_v tribulation_n or_o distress_n or_o persecution_n or_o famine_n or_o nakedness_n or_o peril_n or_o sword_n 36._o as_o it_o be_v write_v for_o thy_o sake_n we_o be_v kill_v all_o the_o day_n long_o we_o be_v account_v as_o sheep_n for_o the_o slaughter_n 37._o nay_o in_o all_o these_o thing_n we_o be_v more_o than_o conqueror_n through_o he_o that_o lovedus_fw-la 38._o for_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o neither_o death_n nor_o life_n nor_o angel_n nor_o principality_n nor_o power_n nor_o thing_n present_a nor_o thing_n to_o come_v 39_o nor_o height_n nor_o depth_n nor_o any_o other_o creature_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n by_o these_o word_n we_o see_v that_o st._n paul_n be_v of_o this_o persuasion_n that_o they_o be_v once_o in_o christ_n that_o it_o be_v not_o any_o nor_o all_o of_o these_o forementioned_a thing_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v they_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n by_o which_o we_o see_v there_o be_v nothing_o but_o wilful_a sin_n that_o can_v separate_v the_o soul_n from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n if_o once_o accept_v and_o whereas_o st._n paul_n say_v 2_o thes_n 2.13.14_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o give_v thanks_o always_o to_o god_n for_o you_o brethren_n belove_v of_o the_o lord_n because_o god_n have_v from_o the_o beginning_n choose_v you_o to_o salvation_n through_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o truth_n whereunto_o he_o call_v you_o by_o our_o gospel_n to_o the_o obtain_n of_o the_o gloey_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n now_o whereas_o st._n paul_n say_v that_o god_n from_o the_o beginning_n choose_v the_o thessalonian_o to_o salvation_n now_o be_v these_o word_n to_o be_v take_v as_o hitherto_o we_o have_v do_v there_o be_v a_o contradiction_n in_o the_o apostle_n own_o word_n for_o in_o the_o ephesian_n he_o there_o say_v that_o they_o be_v choose_v in_o christ_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o here_o in_o the_o thessalonian_o he_o say_v from_o the_o beginning_n now_o be_v they_o choose_v from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o material_a heaven_n and_o earth_n or_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o first_o world_n of_o people_n which_o be_v in_o the_o seed_n of_o cain_n and_o seth._n then_o be_v they_o not_o choose_v before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n but_o at_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n therefore_o these_o word_n admit_v of_o a_o contradiction_n and_o from_o the_o begin_n here_o speak_v of_o can_v not_o reach_v to_o god_n and_o eternity_n for_o there_o be_v neither_o beginning_n nor_o end_n therefore_o his_o word_n here_o and_o in_o the_o ephesian_n admit_v of_o two_o meaning_n the_o first_o be_v as_o i_o before_o prove_v to_o you_o that_o the_o church_n that_o first_o trust_v in_o christ_n be_v make_v choice_n of_o for_o the_o glorious_a tabernacle_n and_o so_o will_v appear_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o his_o glory_n as_o be_v approve_v of_o of_o god_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o choice_n or_o like_n in_o god_n for_o the_o glorious_a tabernacle_n soon_o than_o israel_n or_o before_o israel_n which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n here_o speak_v of_o as_o i_o have_v already_o clear_o prove_v now_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o the_o thessalonian_o be_v choose_v from_o the_o begin_n to_o salvation_n be_v no_o other_o then_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o which_o begin_n i_o shall_v make_v clear_a to_o you_o by_o the_o word_n of_o our_o bless_a lord_n and_o st._n john_n first_n what_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n in_o john_n 15.27_o and_o you_o shall_v also_o bear_v witness_n because_o you_o have_v be_v with_o i_o from_o the_o begin_n and_o st._n john_n say_v 1_o john_n 2.24_o let_v that_o therefore_o abide_v in_o you_o which_o you_o have_v hear_v from_o the_o begin_n if_o that_o which_o you_o have_v hear_v from_o the_o begin_n shall_v remain_v in_o you_o you_o also_o shall_v continue_v in_o the_o son_n and_o in_o the_o father_n by_o what_o be_v here_o say_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o apostle_n have_v no_o other_o meaning_n then_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o publish_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o reason_n christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n do_v express_v themselves_o so_o and_o the_o apostle_n own_o word_n be_v to_o the_o like_a effect_n in_o phil._n 1.5_o for_o your_o fellowship_n in_o the_o gospel_n from_o the_o first_o day_n until_o now_o which_o be_v no_o other_o than_o from_o the_o first_o day_n they_o hear_v the_o word_n now_o the_o thessalonian_o their_o be_v choose_v to_o salvation_n be_v not_o so_o absolute_a but_o that_o they_o may_v through_o their_o own_o neglect_n fall_v short_a of_o salvation_n as_o st._n paul_n own_o word_n make_v appear_v because_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 2_o thes_n 1.11_o wherefore_o also_o we_o pray_v always_o for_o you_o that_o our_o god_n will_v count_v you_o worthy_a of_o this_o call_n and_o fulfil_v all_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o goodness_n and_o the_o work_n of_o faith_n with_o power_n by_o what_o be_v here_o say_v it_o do_v appear_v that_o the_o thessalonian_o be_v choose_v to_o salvation_n be_v like_o that_o of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n who_o be_v choose_v of_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o land_n of_o canan_n for_o god_n bring_v they_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n that_o be_v god_n by_o his_o own_o out_o stretch_a arm_n bring_v they_o out_o of_o egypt_n and_o through_o the_o red_a sea_n this_o be_v that_o which_o lie_v not_o in_o their_o power_n to_o do_v but_o when_o he_o bring_v they_o into_o the_o wilderness_n they_o be_v to_o fight_v for_o the_o land_n of_o canan_n or_o else_o they_o be_v never_o to_o
have_v it_o in_o possession_n so_o it_o be_v with_o these_o thessalonian_o who_o be_v choose_v to_o salvation_n for_o god_n bring_v they_o out_o of_o the_o egyptian_a darkness_n of_o heathenism_n and_o deliver_v they_o out_o of_o the_o red_a sea_n of_o their_o sin_n which_o will_v have_v drown_v they_o in_o perdition_n and_o from_o which_o they_o can_v no_o way_n deliver_v themselves_o and_o it_o be_v only_o the_o out_o stretch_a arm_n of_o god_n that_o do_v or_o can_v deliver_v they_o which_o be_v do_v through_o the_o satisfaction_n make_v by_o the_o blood_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n who_o die_v for_o all_o that_o will_v live_v unto_o he_o now_o the_o thessalonian_o be_v thus_o renew_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o bring_v into_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o deliver_v from_o the_o condemn_a power_n of_o sin_n and_o accept_v in_o and_o through_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o set_v free_a in_o the_o wilderness_n of_o this_o world_n after_o which_o they_o be_v to_o fight_v for_o the_o heavenly_a land_n of_o canaan_n which_o be_v the_o salvation_n they_o be_v choose_v to_o or_o else_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v and_o god_n have_v put_v we_o into_o a_o captivity_n of_o obedience_n we_o be_v to_o wrestle_v for_o the_o blessing_n therefore_o st._n paul_n say_v phil._n 2.12_o work_v out_o your_o own_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a 13._o for_o it_o be_v god_n that_o work_v in_o you_o both_o to_o will_v and_o do_v of_o his_o own_o good_a pleasure_n that_o be_v it_o be_v so_o far_o the_o good_a will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n to_o work_v in_o we_o as_o to_o call_v we_o and_o enlighten_v we_o by_o his_o word_n whereby_o he_o put_v we_o into_o a_o capacity_n of_o obedience_n in_o which_o capacity_n we_o must_v 2_o pet._n 1.10_o work_v out_o our_o own_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a and_o so_o as_o it_o be_v say_v heb._n 4.1_o we_o must_v make_v our_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a for_o if_o we_o improve_v not_o our_o talon_n that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o and_o labour_n in_o his_o service_n we_o must_v expect_v the_o same_o sentence_n from_o the_o lord_n as_o he_o have_v who_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o gospel_n mat._n 25.26,30_o and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v let_v we_o therefore_o fear_n lest_o a_o promise_n be_v leave_v we_o of_o enter_v into_o his_o rest_n any_o of_o you_o shall_v seem_v to_o come_v short_a of_o it_o therefore_o this_o election_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v like_a that_o of_o the_o jewish_a the_o which_o be_v as_o we_o elect_v our_o mayor_n for_o a_o city_n before_o they_o be_v put_v into_o the_o government_n of_o the_o place_n the_o which_o be_v if_o they_o do_v not_o persist_v in_o their_o obedience_n to_o the_o supreme_a power_n they_o shall_v not_o come_v to_o be_v mayor_n although_o he_o be_v elect_v so_o be_v the_o election_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o heavenly_a city_n the_o which_o be_v if_o they_o do_v not_o persist_v in_o their_o obedience_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o promise_n which_o be_v everlasting_a life_n and_o whereas_o st._n paul_n say_v eph._n 3.8_o unto_o i_o who_o be_o less_o than_o the_o least_o of_o all_o saint_n be_v this_o grace_n giver_n that_o i_o shall_v preash_n among_o the_o gentile_n the_o unsearchable_a riches_n of_o christ_n 1._o and_o to_o make_v all_o man_n see_v what_o be_v the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o mystery_n which_o from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n have_v be_v hide_v in_o god_n who_o create_v all_o thing_n by_o jesus_n christ_n for_o this_o secret_n be_v hide_v from_o adam_n who_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o first_o world_n and_o also_o from_o noah_n who_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o second_o world_n and_o from_o abraham_n who_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o three_o world_n which_o be_v the_o world_n that_o be_v to_o come_v and_o so_o all_o along_o this_o mystery_n be_v keep_v secret_a till_o christ_n have_v suffer_v and_o he_o say_v 10._o v._o to_o the_o intent_n that_o now_o unto_o the_o principality_n and_o power_n in_o heavenly_a place_n may_v be_v know_v by_o the_o church_n the_o manifold_a wisdom_n of_o god_n whereas_o he_o say_v principality_n and_o power_n in_o heavenly_a place_n that_o be_v those_o principality_n and_o power_n which_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v term_v the_o heaven_n be_v here_o say_v to_o be_v in_o heavenly_a place_n that_o all_o of_o they_o that_o be_v call_v into_o the_o church_n may_v know_v the_o manifold_a wisdom_n of_o god_n and_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 11._o v._o according_a to_o the_o eternal_a purpose_n which_o he_o purpose_v in_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n now_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o god_n do_v from_o all_o eternity_n intend_v to_o make_v man_n and_o also_o have_v a_o foreknowledge_n of_o man_n miscarriage_n and_o from_o thence_o do_v arise_v a_o purpose_n in_o god_n to_o save_v man_n through_o christ_n yet_o from_o this_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v gather_v that_o god_n do_v then_o reprobate_a man_n but_o that_o he_o have_v from_o all_o eternity_n a_o purpose_n through_o christ_n to_o save_v man._n but_o the_o apostle_n word_n will_v not_o bear_v this_o for_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o god_n have_v from_o all_o eternity_n a_o purpose_n in_o christ_n but_o the_o word_n be_v according_a to_o the_o eternal_a purpose_n as_o look_v forward_o to_o the_o eternity_n that_o lie_v before_o we_o in_o which_o through_o christ_n there_o be_v a_o purpose_n in_o god_n as_o to_o man_n salvation_n and_o according_a to_o this_o st._n paul_n again_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v become_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n to_o all_o they_o that_o obey_v he_o both_o which_o carry_v one_o and_o the_o same_o meaning_n with_o it_o for_o it_o only_o reach_v forward_o to_o the_o eternity_n that_o lie_v before_o we_o and_o whereas_o st._n paul_n say_v ephes_n 1.9,10_o have_v make_v know_v to_o we_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o will_n according_a to_o his_o good_a pleasure_n which_o he_o have_v purpose_v in_o himself_o 10._o that_o in_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n he_o may_v gather_v together_o in_o one_o all_o thing_n in_o christ_n both_o which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o which_o be_v on_o the_o earth_n even_o in_o he_o now_o when_o christ_n first_o come_v it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o last_o time_n here_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n the_o which_o must_v be_v when_o the_o time_n of_o this_o world_n be_v fulfil_v that_o then_o it_o will_v be_v the_o fullness_n of_o time_n both_o of_o this_o and_o the_o old_a world_n at_o which_o fullness_n of_o time_n god_n will_v gather_v together_o in_o one_o all_o thing_n in_o christ_n both_o which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o which_o be_v on_o the_o earth_n which_o will_v be_v when_o the_o lord_n again_o come_v now_o whereas_o st._n paul_n say_v ephes_n 11.12_o in_o who_o also_o we_o have_v obtain_v a_o inheritance_n be_v predestinate_v according_a to_o the_o purpose_n of_o he_o who_o work_v all_o thing_n after_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o own_o will_n now_o the_o question_n be_v what_o this_o predestination_n according_a to_o the_o purpose_n of_o he_o who_o work_v all_o thing_n after_o the_o council_n of_o his_o own_o will_n be_v or_o be_v to_o which_o st._n paul_n answer_v himself_o in_o the_o 12._o v._o according_a to_o what_o the_o angel_n tell_v esdras_n that_o other_o shall_v have_v the_o glorious_a tabernacle_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o they_o according_a to_o what_o st._n paul_n say_v in_o phil._n 1.12_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o his_o glory_n who_o first_o trust_v in_o christ_n by_o which_o we_o may_v see_v that_o the_o purpose_n in_o god_n as_o to_o predestination_n be_v not_o in_o the_o choose_n of_o every_o individual_a person_n so_o as_o he_o can_v not_o fall_v away_o but_o to_o all_o that_o do_v lay_v hold_n on_o the_o tender_a of_o grace_n according_a to_o the_o condition_n as_o it_o be_v offer_v of_o god_n through_o the_o redemption_n purchase_v by_o christ_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n go_v on_o as_o in_o the_o 13._o v._o in_o who_o you_o also_o trust_v after_o that_o you_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n the_o gospel_n of_o your_o salvation_n in_o who_o also_o after_o you_o believe_v you_o be_v seal_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o promise_n we_o see_v that_o this_o seal_n be_v after_o they_o believe_v and_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v this_o seal_n be_v not_o so_o absolute_a but_o that_o some_o of_o they_o may_v fall_v off_o as_o saul_n do_v who_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n the_o which_o
but_o forbid_v his_o prophet_n to_o pray_v for_o they_o as_o in_o jer._n 7.16_o the_o lord_n say_v therefore_o pray_v not_o thou_o for_o this_o people_n neither_o lift_v up_o cry_v nor_o prayer_n for_o they_o neither_o make_v intercession_n unto_o i_o for_o i_o will_v not_o hear_v thou_o and_o god_n also_o say_v in_o jer._n 11.14_o therefore_o pray_v not_o thou_o for_o this_o people_n neither_o lift_v up_o cry_v nor_o prayer_n for_o they_o for_o i_o will_v not_o hear_v they_o in_o the_o time_n that_o they_o cry_v unto_o i_o for_o their_o trouble_n by_o which_o we_o see_v that_o repentance_n will_v not_o be_v accept_v at_o all_o time_n for_o the_o lord_n also_o say_v jer._n 14.12_o when_o they_o fast_o i_o will_v not_o hear_v their_o cry_n and_o when_o they_o offer_v burnt-offering_n and_o a_o oblation_n i_o will_v not_o accept_v they_o but_o i_o will_v consume_v they_o by_o the_o sword_n and_o by_o the_o famine_n and_o by_o the_o pestilence_n and_o it_o be_v say_v jer._n 14.10_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n unto_o this_o people_n thus_o have_v they_o love_v to_o wander_v they_o have_v not_o refrain_v their_o foot_n therefore_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o accept_v of_o they_o he_o will_v now_o remember_v their_o iniquity_n and_o visit_v their_o sin_n we_o see_v here_o that_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o require_v of_o they_o that_o which_o they_o can_v not_o do_v but_o that_o which_o they_o can_v do_v for_o they_o may_v have_v refrain_v their_o foot_n and_o lay_v a_o restraint_n upon_o themselves_o therefore_o the_o lord_n say_v isa_n 50.1_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n where_o be_v the_o bill_n of_o your_o mother_n divorce_n who_o i_o have_v put_v away_o or_o to_o which_o of_o my_o creditor_n be_v it_o to_o who_o i_o have_v sell_v you_o behold_v for_o your_o iniquity_n have_v you_o sell_v yourselves_o and_o for_o your_o transgression_n be_v your_o mother_n put_v away_o here_o the_o lord_n declare_v that_o he_o be_v marry_v to_o israel_n but_o because_o of_o their_o sin_n they_o be_v put_v away_o and_o here_o the_o lord_n speak_v in_o derision_n to_o they_o wherein_o he_o say_v unto_o which_o of_o my_o creditor_n have_v i_o sell_v you_o as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v i_o have_v keep_v covenant_n with_o you_o but_o you_o for_o your_o iniquity_n have_v sell_v yourselves_o now_o have_v god_n reprobate_v these_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o material_a heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o sin_n death_n and_o damnation_n there_o be_v no_o deceit_n can_v be_v like_o it_o see_v god_n have_v thus_o here_o declare_v against_o it_o and_o in_o ezekiel_n by_o his_o oath_n and_o word_n avouch_v it_o but_o whilst_o we_o be_v too_o much_o pore_v on_o the_o say_n of_o st._n paul_n since_o we_o no_o better_a understand_v they_o and_o too_o slight_o pass_v over_o the_o oath_n and_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o weigh_v the_o dangerous_a consequence_n that_o do_v attend_v a_o mistake_n herein_o but_o our_o usual_a say_n be_v forewarned_a forearm_v but_o we_o be_v not_o so_o wise_a as_o to_o take_v the_o warning_n for_o st._n peter_n caution_n we_o that_o in_o st._n paul_n epistle_n there_o be_v some_o thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v which_o some_o wrist_n to_o their_o own_o destruction_n and_o this_o st._n peter_n say_v where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o new_a heaven_n and_o earth_n of_o which_o st._n paul_n say_v in_o some_o place_n before_o the_o world_n begin_v and_o also_o he_o say_v from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o again_o he_o say_v the_o world_n to_o come_v now_o the_o word_n of_o st._n peter_n be_v these_o in_o the_o 2_o pet._n 3.13_o nevertheless_o we_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n look_v for_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n wherein_o dwell_v righteousness_n 14._o v._n wherefore_o belove_v see_v that_o you_o look_v for_o such_o thing_n be_v diligent_a that_o you_o may_v be_v find_v of_o he_o in_o peace_n without_o spot_n and_o blameless_a 15._o v._n and_o account_v that_o the_o long-suffering_a of_o our_o lord_n be_v salvation_n even_o as_o our_o belove_a brother_n paul_n also_o according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n give_v unto_o he_o have_v write_v unto_o you_o 16._o v._n as_o also_o in_o all_o his_o epistle_n speak_v in_o they_o of_o these_o thing_n in_o which_o be_v some_o thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v which_o they_o that_o be_v unlearned_a and_o unstable_a wrist_n as_o they_o do_v also_o the_o other_o scripture_n unto_o their_o own_o destruction_n now_o st._n peter_n do_v make_v it_o clear_a that_o in_o all_o st._n paul_n epistle_n he_o do_v speak_v to_o they_o of_o these_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v and_o of_o their_o election_n and_o choice_n for_o that_o world_n before_o that_o world_n begin_v the_o which_o st._n peter_n here_o term_v the_o new_a heaven_n and_o earth_n now_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v they_o that_o be_v unlearned_a and_o be_v unstable_a that_o do_v wrest_v the_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o destruction_n and_o now_o though_o we_o have_v man_n of_o learning_n and_o stable_n in_o these_o our_o day_n among_o we_o yet_o those_o that_o first_o bring_v in_o this_o darkness_n be_v neither_o learned_a nor_o stable_n in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n and_o whereas_o st._n paul_n say_v heb._n 1.2_o god_n have_v in_o these_o last_o day_n speak_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o son_n who_o he_o have_v appoint_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n by_o who_o also_o he_o make_v the_o world_n now_o what_o be_v the_o world_n that_o be_v make_v to_o which_o i_o answer_v first_o the_o material_a heaven_n and_o earth_n second_o the_o world_n of_o people_n that_o do_v proceed_v from_o adam_n the_o which_o be_v general_o call_v the_o old_a world_n three_o the_o world_n of_o people_n which_o do_v proceed_v from_o noah_n of_o who_o we_o spring_v and_o also_o the_o world_n to_o come_v the_o foundation_n of_o which_o be_v israel_n as_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v for_o the_o earth_n be_v say_v to_o be_v set_v fast_o in_o they_o and_o st._n paul_n say_v 2_o tim._n 1.9_o who_o have_v save_v we_o and_o call_v we_o with_o a_o holy_a call_n not_o according_a to_o our_o work_n but_o according_a to_o his_o own_o purpose_n and_o grace_n which_o be_v give_v we_o i●_n christ_n jesus_n before_o the_o world_n begin_v that_o be_v at_o the_o first_o establish_v of_o the_o gospel_n there_o be_v a_o general_a call_n not_o of_o their_o work_n but_o according_a to_o a_o purpose_n in_o god_n which_o be_v give_v in_o christ_n before_o the_o world_n begin_v which_o be_v the_o world_n to_o come_v for_o in_o heb._n 2.5_o he_o tell_v it_o be_v the_o world_n to_o come_v of_o which_o he_o speak_v now_o whereas_o he_o say_v in_o 2_o tim._n 1.10_o but_o now_o be_v make_v manifest_a by_o the_o appear_a of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v abolish_v death_n and_o borough_n life_n and_o immortality_n to_o light_n through_o the_o gospel_n now_o here_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o scripture_n way_n of_o speak_v in_o that_o he_o say_v have_v abolish_v death_n and_o bring_v life_n and_o immortality_n to_o light_n at_o which_o time_n death_n be_v not_o abolish_v therefore_o speak_v for_o time_n to_o come_v which_o then_o at_o the_o appear_v of_o christ_n all_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o the_o saint_n will_v be_v raise_v and_o his_o live_a saint_n so_o change_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o fear_n of_o their_o fall_n off_o so_o as_o to_o taste_v eternal_a death_n and_o he_o tell_v we_o how_o this_o life_n and_o immortality_n come_v to_o light_v that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o be_v through_o the_o gospel_n of_o which_o he_o say_v he_o be_v make_v a_o minister_n now_o see_v life_n and_o immortality_n come_v to_o light_v through_o the_o gospel_n we_o shall_v in_o all_o thing_n labour_v to_o walk_v in_o obedience_n thereunto_o which_o gospel_n include_v the_o whole_a moral_a law_n the_o which_o be_v if_o we_o perform_v the_o condition_n we_o shall_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o promise_n which_o be_v immortality_n and_o eternal_a life_n for_o now_o god_n expect_v fruit_n from_o ●s_n as_o he_o do_v from_o israel_n but_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o find_v with_o we_o than_o be_v with_o they_o that_o be_v in_o show_n only_o we_o must_v ook_v to_o be_v hew_v down_o and_o cast_v into_o the_o fire_n at_o his_o come_n now_o whereas_o st._n paul_n say_v in_o titus_n 1.2_o in_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n which_o god_n that_o can_v lie_v promise_v before_o the_o world_n begin_v now_o this_o promise_n without_o doubt_n be_v all_o along_o as_o to_o adam_n and_o before_o the_o world_n which_o spring_v from_o he_o and_o so_o to_o noah_n before_o this_o world_n be_v that_o spring_v from_o he_o but_o i_o believe_v
give_v this_o belief_n renew_v his_o creature_n in_o their_o will_n and_o affection_n so_o what_o afterward_o be_v not_o wilful_o commit_v be_v not_o impute_v therefore_o by_o christ_n we_o be_v restore_v to_o that_o we_o lose_v in_o adam_n for_o although_o the_o believer_n that_o be_v thus_o renew_a have_v not_o a_o inherent_a perfect_a righteousness_n yet_o he_o have_v a_o impute_a perfect_a righteousness_n col._n 1.28_o col._n 2.10_o john_n 6.47_o 1_o cor._n 10.12_o and_o therefore_o say_v to_o be_v perfect_a in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o christ_n say_v the_o believer_n have_v everlasting_a life_n in_o he_o but_o he_o that_o thus_o stand_v let_v he_o take_v heed_n lest_o he_o fall_v for_o our_o stand_n be_v like_o adam_n in_o paradise_n for_o have_v he_o never_o sin_v he_o have_v never_o died._n so_o the_o believer_n if_o he_o sin_v not_o wilful_o shall_v ever_o have_v this_o eternal_a life_n abide_v in_o he_o so_o as_o he_o shall_v never_o see_v hell_n for_o the_o believer_n that_o be_v not_o of_o the_o very_a elect_n stand_v no_o secure_a than_o our_o first_o parent_n do_v in_o paradise_n the_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n make_v out_o where_o he_o say_v 2_o cor._n 11.2,3_o i_o be_o jealous_a over_o you_o with_o a_o godly_a jealousy_n for_o i_o have_v espouse_v you_o to_o one_o husband_n that_o i_o may_v present_v you_o a_o chaste_a virgin_n unto_o christ_n but_o i_o fear_v lest_o by_o any_o mean_n as_o the_o serpent_n beguile_v eve_n through_o his_o subtlety_n so_o your_o mind_n shall_v be_v corrupt_v from_o the_o simplicity_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n this_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v espouse_v to_o christ_n and_o stand_v as_o our_o first_o parent_n do_v of_o who_o he_o be_v afraid_a they_o shall_v be_v deceive_v as_o our_o first_o parent_n be_v and_o also_o by_o what_o he_o say_v to_o they_o of_o who_o he_o say_v they_o be_v ordain_v to_o eternal_a life_n the_o which_o ordination_n appear_v to_o be_v no_o other_o than_o this_o of_o the_o corinthian_n which_o be_v that_o they_o be_v choose_v of_o god_n for_o eternal_a life_n and_o in_o be_v so_o god_n put_v they_o into_o a_o caprcity_n of_o obedience_n in_o which_o they_o be_v continual_o to_o labour_n to_o make_v their_o call_v and_o election_n sure_a 2_o pet._n 1.10_o for_o the_o eternal_a life_n that_o the_o believer_n here_o receive_v they_o hold_v but_o on_o condition_n of_o their_o obedience_n therefore_o st._n paul_n say_v of_o these_o that_o be_v ordain_v act_v 13.43_o when_o the_o congregation_n be_v break_v up_o many_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o religious_a proselyte_n follow_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n who_o speak_v to_o they_o persuade_v they_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n now_o these_o be_v those_o of_o antioch_n of_o who_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 48._o v._o be_v ordain_v to_o eternal_a life_n now_o have_v this_o eternal_a life_n be_v give_v absolute_a without_o condition_n he_o will_v not_o have_v persuade_v they_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o than_o he_o will_v have_v know_v they_o can_v not_o have_v fall_v from_o it_o now_o this_o word_n ordain_v be_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o speak_v which_o st._n paul_n do_v apply_v to_o they_o that_o be_v make_v bishop_n where_o he_o say_v tit._n 2.16_o that_o titus_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n the_o like_a word_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o minister_n when_o we_o say_v such_o a_o one_o be_v a_o ordain_v minister_n that_o be_v when_o he_o be_v so_o make_v by_o the_o church_n who_o the_o king_n allow_v of_o and_o this_o ordination_n be_v for_o his_o life_n upon_o which_o he_o receive_v his_o benefice_n but_o notwithstanding_o this_o ordination_n and_o benefice_n which_o be_v give_v he_o for_o his_o life_n yet_o if_o he_o be_v find_v in_o rebellion_n to_o the_o king_n his_o ordination_n and_o live_v and_o his_o all_o be_v forfeit_v and_o so_o it_o be_v with_o those_o that_o god_n renew_v and_o restore_v and_o put_v into_o a_o capacity_n of_o everlasting_a life_n the_o gift_n be_v free_a as_o from_o god_n but_o if_o any_o of_o they_o fall_v short_a of_o receive_v it_o it_o be_v because_o they_o be_v want_v to_o themselves_o and_o also_o st._n paul_n say_v 2_o tim._n 2.10_o therefore_o i_o endure_v all_o thing_n for_o the_o elect_n sake_n that_o they_o may_v also_o obtain_v the_o salvation_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n with_o eternal_a glory_n that_o be_v there_o be_v a_o possibility_n that_o the_o elect_n may_v not_o obtain_v salvation_n for_o who_o sake_n he_o have_v the_o more_o affliction_n lay_v on_o he_o that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o example_n to_o they_o to_o suffer_v and_o st._n paul_n say_v concern_v his_o apostleship_n gal._n 2.8_o for_o he_o that_o wrought_v effectual_o in_o peter_n to_o the_o apostleship_n of_o the_o circumcision_n the_o same_o be_v mighty_a in_o i_o towards_o the_o gentile_n here_o we_o see_v st._n peter_n be_v choose_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o circumcision_n to_o who_o he_o write_v this_o epistle_n 1_o pet._n 1.2_o peter_n a_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o the_o stranger_n scatter_v throughout_o pontus_n galatia_n cappadocia_n asia_n and_o bythinia_n elect_a according_a to_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n the_o father_n through_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n unto_o obedience_n and_o sprinkle_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n now_o in_o that_o st._n peter_n say_v that_o he_o write_v this_o to_o the_o stranger_n that_o be_v scatter_v throughout_o all_o those_o place_n whereby_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o it_o be_v israel_n who_o be_v the●_n a_o scatter_a people_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v elect_a according_a to_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n through_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n unto_o obedience_n for_o from_o israel_n be_v choose_v a_o certain_a number_n of_o the_o very_a elect_n that_o be_v so_o secure_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n as_o they_o they_o shall_v not_o fall_v away_o which_o be_v also_o foreknow_v of_o god_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o god_n have_v afore_o determine_v that_o the_o church_n that_o first_o trust_v in_o christ_n as_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v be_v choose_v for_o the_o glorious_a tabernacle_n and_o for_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o this_o god_n pour_v forth_o his_o spirit_n upon_o they_o whereby_o they_o become_v sanctify_v and_o so_o obedient_a but_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o say_v it_o be_v impossible_a for_o some_o of_o they_o to_o fall_v away_o for_o by_o his_o follow_a word_n he_o say_v 1_o pet._n 1,3,4_o bless_a be_v the_o god_n and_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o according_a to_o his_o abundant_a mercy_n have_v beget_v we_o again_o unto_o a_o lively_a hope_n by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o jesus_n christ_n from_o the_o dead_a 4._o to_o a_o inheritance_n incorruptible_a and_o undefiled_a and_o that_o fade_v not_o away_o reserve_v in_o heaven_n for_o you_o here_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o be_v beget_v again_o into_o a_o lively_a hope_n of_o this_o inheritance_n that_o be_v incorruptible_a and_o whereas_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 5._o v._n who_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n through_o faith_n unto_o salvation_n ready_a to_o be_v reveal_v in_o the_o last_o time_n that_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o none_o can_v stand_v without_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o almighty_a god_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o impossible_a for_o some_o that_o be_v of_o the_o first_o church_n through_o their_o own_o neglect_n and_o satan_n subtlety_n to_o fall_v away_o therefore_o he_o say_v 1_o pet._n 1.13_o wherefore_o ●ird_n up_o the_o loin_n of_o your_o mind_n be_v sober_a and_o hope_v to_o the_o end_n for_o the_o grace_n that_o be_v to_o be_v bring_v unto_o you_o at_o the_o revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 14._o as_o obedient_a child_n not_o fashion_v yourselves_o according_a to_o the_o former_a lust_n in_o your_o ignorance_n 15._o but_o as_o he_o which_o have_v call_v you_o be_v holy_a so_o be_v you_o holy_a in_o all_o manner_n of_o conversation_n 16._o because_o it_o be_v write_v be_v you_o holy_a as_o i_o be_o holy_a 17._o and_o if_o you_o call_v on_o the_o father_n who_o without_o respect_n of_o person_n judge_v according_a to_o every_o man_n work_n pass_v the_o time_n of_o your_o sojourn_v here_o in_o fear_n as_o to_o what_o st._n peter_n say_v in_o the_o 2._o c._n he_o there_o speak_v after_o the_o scripture_n way_n of_o speak_v as_o in_o the_o 9_o v._n but_o you_o be_v a_o choose_a generation_n a_o royal_a priesthood_n a_o holy_a nation_n a_o peculiar_a people_n that_o you_o shall_v show_v forth_o the_o praise_n of_o he_o who_o have_v call_v you_o out_o of_o darkness_n into_o his_o marvellous_a light_n this_o be_v absolute_o speak_v for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v for_o at_o the_o then_o present_a time_n st._n paul_n
the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o that_o it_o do_v so_o much_o eclipse_v his_o justice_n and_o mercy_n in_o make_v of_o he_o so_o partial_a a_o judge_n and_o also_o hurl_v the_o soul_n into_o a_o sleep_a lethargy_n of_o security_n whilst_o they_o fancy_v themselves_o thus_o elect_v and_o make_v they_o unmindful_a of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n although_o he_o have_v tell_v we_o if_o he_o come_v upon_o we_o in_o a_o hour_n that_o we_o be_v not_o aware_a of_o he_o will_v give_v we_o our_o portion_n with_o hypocrite_n and_o unbeliever_n now_o have_v all_o along_o show_v you_o what_o be_v the_o election_n or_o call_v of_o the_o first_o christian_n church_n the_o which_o be_v after_o they_o be_v ingraft_v in_o christ_n they_o be_v to_o fight_v to_o keep_v their_o ground_n heb._n 6.4,5_o so_o as_o to_o make_v their_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a for_o else_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v the_o very_a sealing_n of_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v cancel_v to_o they_o and_o although_o the_o name_n of_o the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n be_v write_v in_o heaven_n yet_o they_o may_v be_v blot_v out_o thence_o for_o god_n say_v to_o moses_n exod._n 32.33_o whosoever_o have_v sin_v against_o i_o he_o will_v i_o blot_v out_o of_o my_o book_n and_o after_o god_n have_v espouse_v israel_n he_o be_v say_v to_o give_v she_o a_o bill_n of_o divorce_n isa_n 50.1,2_o and_o the_o lord_n to_o the_o church_n of_o philadelphia_n say_v hold_v fast_o that_o thou_o have_v that_o no_o man_n take_v they_o crown_n and_o christ_n also_o say_v rev._n 22.19_o if_o any_o man_n take_v away_o from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o book_n of_o this_o prophecy_n god_n shall_v take_v away_o his_o part_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n and_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a city_n and_o from_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n we_o see_v that_o this_o be_v speak_v to_o they_o that_o have_v a_o share_n in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n to_o let_v they_o know_v that_o if_o they_o do_v wicked_o their_o part_n therein_o will_v be_v lose_v that_o be_v take_v from_o they_o of_o the_o election_n of_o child_n now_o as_o to_o the_o election_n of_o the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n the_o which_o every_o sincere_a heart_a christian_a be_v a_o member_n if_o any_o of_o their_o child_n die_v in_o their_o infancy_n before_o they_o have_v be_v guilty_a of_o actual_a sin_n they_o be_v take_v into_o mercy_n as_o be_v in_o covenant_n act_v 2.29_o for_o the_o promise_n be_v unto_o you_o and_o to_o your_o child_n and_o to_o all_o that_o be_v afar_o off_o even_o as_o many_o as_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n shall_v call_v and_o also_o the_o covenant_n be_v make_v with_o their_o little_a one_o deut._n 29.11_o and_o st._n paul_n say_v 1_o cor._n 7.14_o the_o unbelieving_a husband_n be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o wife_n and_o the_o unbelieving_a wife_n be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o husband_n else_o be_v your_o child_n unclean_a but_o now_o be_v they_o holy_a then_o if_o they_o be_v holy_a they_o be_v fit_a for_o heaven_n if_o take_v away_o before_o they_o commit_v sin_n and_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o esdras_n 2.29_o my_o hand_n shall_v cover_v thou_o so_o that_o thy_o child_n shall_v not_o see_v hell_n by_o what_o be_v here_o say_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o the_o child_n of_o true_a believer_n that_o be_v beget_v after_o their_o parent_n be_v regenerate_v be_v holy_a and_o if_o they_o die_v in_o their_o infancy_n will_v be_v bless_v now_o the_o child_n of_o believe_a parent_n be_v from_o their_o birth_n in_o covenant_n with_o god_n they_o be_v by_o their_o parent_n to_o be_v bring_v up_o in_o the_o strict_a way_n of_o holiness_n that_o they_o may_v grow_v in_o knowledge_n and_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o not_o look_v in_o for_o a_o new_a call_n but_o to_o walk_v with_o all_o diligence_n in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o eternal_a life_n which_o god_n have_v promise_v to_o they_o that_o obey_v he_o for_o god_n require_v fruit_n of_o we_o as_o he_o do_v of_o israel_n we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n which_o if_o he_o find_v not_o we_o shall_v likewise_o also_o be_v cut_v off_o and_o god_n wonderful_o commend_v abraham_n where_o he_o say_v gen._n 18.19_o i_o know_v he_o that_o he_o will_v command_v his_o child_n and_o his_o household_n after_o he_o and_o they_o shall_v keep_v the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o do_v justice_n and_o judgement_n that_o the_o lord_n may_v bring_v upon_o abraham_n that_o which_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o he_o but_o we_o have_v not_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o abraham_n but_o o_o that_o we_o will_v consider_v our_o way_n to_o be_v wise_a and_o cry_v out_o mighty_o to_o he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o save_v we_o for_o he_o have_v say_v they_o that_o seek_v i_o shall_v find_v i_o if_o they_o search_v for_o i_o with_o the_o whole_a heart_n so_o if_o we_o be_v not_o want_v to_o ourselves_o god_n will_v be_v find_v of_o we_o but_o gray_a hare_n be_v upon_o we_o although_o we_o know_v it_o not_o o_o that_o we_o be_v well_o awaken_v out_o of_o this_o sleep_a lethargy_n of_o sloth_n and_o security_n so_o as_o to_o take_v hold_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n and_o mercy_n as_o it_o be_v offer_v by_o christ_n and_o to_o give_v ourselves_o whole_o up_o to_o he_o bege_v strength_n of_o he_o that_o we_o may_v be_v enable_v to_o live_v unto_o he_o and_o perform_v the_o condition_n that_o ●e_n require_v of_o we_o now_o as_o to_o the_o special_a elect._n the_o which_o the_o lord_n term_v the_o very_a elect_n where_o he_o say_v mat._n 24.24_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a they_o shall_v deceive_v the_o very_a elect._n and_o also_o of_o who_o the_o angel_n make_v mention_n of_o where_o he_o say_v in_o rev._n 17.8_o and_o they_o that_o dwell_v on_o the_o earth_n shall_v wonder_v who_o name_n be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n the_o which_o foundation_n be_v as_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v to_o you_o which_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v lay_v in_o israel_n when_o the_o lord_n fix_v they_o in_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n for_o israel_n be_v choose_v to_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n of_o people_n which_o be_v now_o to_o come_v and_o at_o which_o foundation_n christ_n be_v figurative_o slay_v in_o the_o paschal_n lamb._n and_o the_o lord_n foresee_v the_o miscarriage_n of_o israel_n it_o do_v appear_v that_o god_n will_v have_v a_o certain_a number_n so_o secure_v as_o they_o shall_v not_o fall_v away_o but_o to_o remain_v as_o stand_v witness_n through_o the_o world_n whilst_o the_o rest_n be_v but_o put_v in_o a_o capacity_n of_o obedience_n now_o at_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o old_a world_n it_o be_v say_v gen._n 6.8_o noah_n find_v grace_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o 9_o v._o noah_n be_v a_o just_a man_n and_o perfect_a in_o his_o generation_n and_o noah_n walk_v with_o god_n that_o be_v have_v walk_v in_o obedience_n to_o god_n and_o have_v improve_v the_o talon_n which_o god_n have_v give_v he_o whilst_o the_o other_o have_v whole_o corrupt_v their_o way_n as_o in_o the_o 12._o v._o and_o god_n look_v upon_o the_o earth_n and_o behold_v it_o be_v corrupt_a for_o all_o flesh_n have_v corrupt_v his_o way_n upon_o the_o earth_n but_o god_n find_v noah_n in_o the_o capacity_n that_o he_o have_v put_v he_o in_o that_o he_o have_v not_o corrupt_v his_o way_n but_o have_v improve_v the_o talon_n which_o he_o have_v give_v he_o therefore_o be_v bless_v of_o he_o by_o which_o we_o may_v plain_o see_v that_o there_o be_v no_o absolute_a election_n through_o the_o first_o world_n and_o it_o do_v appear_v when_o god_n have_v again_o renew_v the_o world_n in_o noah_n as_o in_o gen._n 9.1_o and_o god_n bless_v noah_n and_o his_o son_n and_o say_v unto_o they_o be_v fruitful_a and_o multiply_v and_o replenish_v the_o earth_n and_o the_o fear_n of_o you_o and_o the_o dread_n of_o you_o shall_v be_v upon_o every_o beast_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o upon_o every_o fowl_n of_o the_o air_n upon_o all_o that_o move_v upon_o the_o earth_n and_o upon_o all_o the_o fish_n of_o the_o sea_n into_o your_o hand_n be_v they_o deliver_v now_o although_o after_o the_o flood_n god_n have_v restore_v to_o man_n his_o power_n again_o and_o put_v they_o all_o into_o a_o fresh_a capacity_n of_o obedience_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o do_v almost_o all_o backslide_v again_o then_o god_n choose_v abraham_n and_o bless_v he_o as_o in_o gen._n 12.1_o and_o afterward_o he_o prove_v he_o gen._n 2._o and_o
in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o sheep_n and_o the_o goat_n that_o the_o sheep_n go_v into_o everlasting_a life_n that_o be_v that_o none_o of_o they_o which_o the_o lord_n then_o will_v receive_v into_o mercy_n shall_v ever_o see_v hell_n but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n although_o they_o may_v afterward_o taste_v of_o a_o temporal_a death_n according_a to_o which_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o john_n 8.51_o very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o if_o a_o man_n keep_v my_o say_n he_o shall_v never_o see_v death_n now_o it_o be_v very_o clear_a that_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o mean_a that_o they_o shall_v not_o die_v a_o temporal_a death_n because_o we_o see_v that_o all_o die_v so_o the_o lord_n say_v of_o all_o the_o sheep_n that_o they_o go_v into_o everlasting_a life_n because_o they_o be_v all_o of_o they_o then_o secure_v from_o hell_n and_o st._n john_n say_v to_o they_o to_o who_o he_o write_v wherein_o he_o include_v himself_o john_n 3.14_o we_o know_v that_o we_o have_v pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n because_o we_o love_v the_o brethren_n and_o the_o lord_n say_v john_n 6.50_o this_o be_v the_o bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n that_o a_o man_n may_v eat_v thereof_o and_o not_o die_v we_o see_v when_o the_o lord_n have_v take_v away_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n from_o his_o people_n he_o afterward_o count_v their_o departure_n hence_o not_o a_o die_a so_o the_o lord_n after_o this_o way_n of_o speak_v say_v of_o his_o sheep_n in_o the_o parable_n that_o they_o go_v into_o life_n eternal_a now_o if_o we_o will_v ever_o understand_v the_o scripture_n we_o must_v understand_v the_o scripture_n way_n of_o speak_v and_o when_o the_o lord_n come_v at_o which_o time_n his_o sheep_n will_v be_v gaiher_v then_o will_v christ_n sheep_n be_v bring_v into_o one_o fold_n and_o then_o shall_v we_o be_v all_o teach_v of_o god_n then_o it_o be_v there_o will_v be_v one_o fold_v and_o one_o shepherd_n and_o then_o also_o shall_v japhet_n dwell_v in_o this_o tent_n of_o shem._n and_o now_o as_o the_o very_a elect_n follow_v the_o lord_n through_o all_o persecution_n and_o affliction_n so_o israel_n shall_v obey_v he_o in_o the_o fullness_n of_o all_o thing_n now_o the_o lord_n when_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n speak_v to_o the_o jew_n in_o dark_a sentence_n and_o parable_n because_o they_o see_v may_v not_o see_v and_o hear_v they_o may_v not_o understand_v the_o which_o make_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n more_o dark_a to_o we_o now_o that_o the_o waldenses_n and_o albigenses_n be_v the_o very_a elect_n speak_v of_o by_o christ_n it_o do_v certain_o appear_v because_o they_o have_v ever_o remain_v undeceive_v by_o the_o beast_n and_o false_a prophet_n when_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n be_v fall_v off_o according_a to_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o angel_n in_o rev._n 17.8_o the_o beast_n that_o thou_o see_v be_v and_o be_v not_o and_o shall_v ascend_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o go_v into_o perdition_n and_o they_o that_o dwell_v on_o the_o earth_n shall_v wonder_v who_o name_n be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o w●…ld_n now_o these_o waldenses_n and_o albigenses_n continue_v steadfast_a and_o be_v never_o draw_v off_o by_o the_o beast_n it_o do_v certain_o appear_v they_o be_v the_o very_a elect_n speak_v of_o by_o christ_n matt._n 24.24_o now_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n luk._n 10.20_o rev._n 21.27_o your_o name_n be_v witten_v in_o heaven_n but_o he_o do_v not_o say_v to_o they_o that_o their_o name_n be_v write_v in_o heaven_n from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o although_o it_o do_v appear_v that_o the_o name_n of_o the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n be_v write_v in_o heaven_n by_o what_o god_n say_v to_o moses_n in_o exod._n 32.33_o and_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o moses_n whosoever_o have_v sin_v against_o i_o he_o will_v i_o blot_v out_o of_o my_o book_n and_o by_o what_o david_n say_v of_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n as_o in_o psal_n 69.28_o let_v they_o be_v blot_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o live_n and_o not_o be_v write_v with_o the_o righteous_a by_o which_o it_o do_v appear_v that_o the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n as_o they_o come_v into_o the_o world_n that_o their_o name_n be_v write_v in_o heaven_n till_o by_o their_o sin_n their_o name_n be_v blot_v out_o thence_o for_o the_o covenant_n be_v make_v with_o they_o and_o their_o child_n the_o which_o show_v that_o the_o child_n name_n must_v be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n till_o such_o time_n that_o by_o their_o wilful_a sin_v they_o exclude_v themselves_o from_o the_o mercy_n promise_v by_o that_o covenant_n and_o then_o be_v their_o name_n blot_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n now_o whereas_o st._n paul_n in_o ephesian_n say_v that_o they_o be_v choose_v in_o christ_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n so_o here_o in_o the_o revelation_n those_o that_o shall_v remain_v a_o stand_a witness_n be_v say_v to_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n the_o which_o full_o declare_v there_o be_v a_o two_o fold_v meaning_n in_o it_o the_o which_o be_v as_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v to_o you_o now_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o deceive_v the_o very_a elect_n it_o do_v thereby_o appear_v to_o be_v the_o jew_n because_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a select_a number_n choose_v of_o the_o jew_n the_o which_o be_v according_a to_o the_o election_n of_o grace_n the_o which_o the_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n make_v appear_v and_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v seem_v to_o signify_v as_o much_o where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o sheep_n which_o his_o father_n have_v give_v he_o as_o in_o john_n 10.27,28,29_o now_o the_o christian_a jew_n be_v say_v to_o be_v all_o warn_v to_o go_v out_o of_o jerusalem_n before_o the_o destruction_n thereof_o but_o where_o they_o go_v we_o know_v not_o and_o they_o be_v christian_n and_o live_v among_o the_o christian_n it_o may_v be_v those_o that_o retain_v their_o religion_n when_o all_o the_o rest_n fall_v away_o and_o so_o these_o waldenses_n and_o albigenses_n do_v therefore_o appear_v to_o be_v these_o christian_a jew_n because_o there_o be_v say_v there_o be_v a_o certain_a number_n of_o the_o sew_v that_o do_v follow_v the_o lamb_n whithersoever_o he_o go_v and_o also_o it_o be_v say_v when_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v seal_v there_o be_v a_o certain_a number_n of_o every_o tribe_n seal_v except_v dan_n rev._n 7.3,4_o the_o angel_n say_v hurt_v not_o the_o earth_n neither_o the_o sea_n nor_o the_o tree_n till_o we_o have_v seal_v the_o servant_n of_o ●od_a in_o their_o forehead_n and_o i_o hear_v the_o number_n of_o they_o that_o be_v seal_v and_o there_o be_v seal_v a_o hundred_o forty_o and_o four_o thousand_o of_o all_o the_o tribe_n of_o the_o child_n of_o the_o israel_n in_o the_o first_o place_n he_o say_v he_o hear_v the_o number_n of_o they_o that_o be_v seal_v but_o he_o do_v not_o tell_v we_o what_o that_o number_n be_v but_o leave_v that_o he_o go_v on_o and_o tell_v we_o how_o many_o be_v seal_v of_o all_o the_o tribe_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n and_o in_o the_o follow_a verse_n he_o say_v of_o every_o tribe_n there_o be_v seal_v twelve_o thousand_o and_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o seal_v he_o say_v in_o rev._n 9_o after_o this_o i_o behold_v and_o lo_o a_o great_a multitude_n which_o no_o man_n can_v number_v of_o all_o nation_n and_o kindred_n and_o people_n and_o tongue_n stand_v before_o the_o throne_n clothe_v with_o white_a robe_n and_o palm_n in_o their_o hand_n 10._o v._n and_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n say_v salvation_n to_o our_o god_n which_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n and_o unto_o the_o lamb._n this_o appear_v to_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o raise_a saint_n and_o the_o glorious_a tabernacle_n where_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n will_v be_v and_o whereas_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 11._o v._o and_o all_o the_o angel_n stand_v round_o about_o the_o throne_n and_o about_o the_o elder_n and_o the_o four_o beast_n and_o fall_v before_o the_o throne_n on_o their_o face_n and_o worship_v god_n now_o these_o four_o beast_n do_v seem_v to_o be_v the_o people_n of_o the_o nation_n that_o be_v save_v alive_a to_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n after_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v manifest_a that_o then_o they_o will_v be_v gather_v to_o canaan_n to_o worship_n where_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n will_v be_v in_o the_o glorious_a tabernacle_n now_o in_o rev._n 4._o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o the_o multitude_n of_o people_n of_o all_o nation_n that_o
be_v clothe_v in_o white_a robe_n therefore_o the_o four_o beast_n there_o speak_v of_o do_v appear_v to_o be_v the_o raise_v saint_n and_o also_o they_o be_v there_o say_v to_o be_v round_o about_o the_o throne_n and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o throne_n and_o they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v wing_n which_o show_v they_o be_v exalt_v above_o the_o earth_n but_o in_o the_o seven_o chap._n the_o beast_n be_v not_o there_o say_v to_o have_v wing_n neither_o to_o be_v round_o about_o the_o throne_n nor_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o throne_n but_o they_o be_v there_o say_v to_o worship_n before_o the_o throne_n that_o be_v before_o the_o glorious_a tabernacle_n where_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n will_v be_v rev._n 21.21_o and_o the_o pavement_n of_o the_o glorious_a tabernacle_n will_v be_v like_a rev._n 4.6_o a_o sea_n of_o glass_n as_o clear_a as_o cristial_a so_o that_o his_o people_n that_o be_v then_o leave_v upon_o the_o earth_n may_v through_o the_o sea_n of_o glass_n behold_v the_o infinite_a glory_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o angel_n and_o raise_v saint_n that_o be_v with_o he_o now_o that_o the_o lord_n do_v term_v the_o people_n of_o this_o world_n beast_n be_v evident_a by_o what_o the_o angel_n say_v esd_v 11.39_o be_v not_o thou_o it_o that_o remain_v of_o the_o beast_n who_o i_o make_v to_o reign_v in_o my_o woold_n ●hat_n the_o end_n of_o their_o time_n may_v come_v through_o they_o now_o these_o beast_n speak_v of_o here_o be_v the_o wicked_a of_o the_o world_n which_o have_v have_v the_o government_n and_o the_o end_n of_o these_o evil_a time_n will_v come_v through_o they_o but_o the_o beast_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o two_o forementioned_a chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n in_o the_o four_o chap._n the_o beast_n be_v the_o raise_v saint_n and_o in_o the_o seven_o chap._n the_o beast_n be_v those_o saint_n that_o be_v leave_v upon_o the_o earth_n and_o st._n john_n say_v r●…_n 14.1,2,3_o i_o look_v and_o lo_o a_o lamb_n stand_v on_o mount_n zion_n and_o with_o he_o a_o hundred_o forty_o and_o four_o thousand_o have_v his_o father_n name_v write_v in_o their_o forehead_n and_o i_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n as_o the_o voice_n of_o many_o water_n and_o as_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o great_a thunder_n and_o i_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o harper_n harp_v with_o their_o harp_n and_o they_o sing_v as_o it_o be_v a_o new_a song_n before_o the_o throne_n and_o before_o the_o four_o beast_n and_o the_o elder_n and_o no_o man_n can_v learn_v that_o song_n but_o the_o hundred_o and_o forty_o and_o four_o thousand_o which_o be_v redeem_a from_o the_o earth_n by_o the_o hundred_o forty_o and_o four_o thousand_o be_v mean_v the_o very_a elect._n the_o which_o certain_a number_n of_o israel_n do_v appear_v to_o be_v find_v in_o christ_n at_o his_o come_n although_o we_o have_v not_o know_v they_o and_o this_o song_n which_o they_o sing_v which_o no_o man_n can_v learn_v it_o may_v be_v because_o they_o be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o earth_n and_o therefore_o from_o among_o man_n for_o the_o raise_v saint_n be_v not_o call_v men._n and_o it_o be_v say_v of_o they_o in_o rev._n 14.4,5_o these_o be_v they_o which_o be_v not_o defile_v with_o woman_n for_o these_o be_v virgin_n these_o be_v they_o which_o follow_v the_o lamb_n whithersoever_o he_o go_v these_o be_v redeem_v from_o among_o man_n be_v the_o first_o fruit_n unto_o god_n and_o the_o lamb._n now_o in_o heaven_n we_o be_v not_o to_o think_v there_o be_v distinction_n of_o age_n or_o sex_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v they_o be_v not_o defile_v with_o woman_n when_o they_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n be_v that_o they_o be_v not_o guilty_a of_o idolatrous_a worship_n for_o idolatry_n in_o scripture_n be_v often_o term_a fornication_n and_o adultery_n so_o these_o not_o only_o have_v keep_v themselves_o from_o idolatry_n but_o in_o all_o other_o thing_n they_o have_v live_v exemplary_a life_n as_o in_o rev._n 14.5_o in_o their_o mouth_n be_v find_v no_o guile_n for_o they_o be_v without_o fault_n before_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n and_o esdras_n say_v in_o 2_o esdras_n 2.42,43,44,45,46,47_o i_o esdras_n see_v upon_o mount_n zion_n a_o great_a people_n who_o i_o can_v not_o number_v and_o they_o all_o praise_v the_o lord_n with_o song_n 43._o v._n and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o there_o be_v a_o young_a man_n of_o bigh_a stature_n tall_a than_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o upon_o every_o one_o of_o their_o head_n he_o set_v crown_n and_o be_v more_o exalt_v which_o i_o marvel_v at_o great_o 44._o v._n so_o i_o ask_v the_o angel_n and_o say_v sir_n what_o be_v those_o 45._o he_o answer_v and_o say_v unto_o i_o these_o be_v they_o that_o have_v put_v off_o mortal_a clothing_n and_o put_v on_o the_o immortal_a and_o have_v confess_v the_o name_n of_o god_n now_o be_v they_o crown_v and_o receive_v palm_n 46._o v._n then_o say_v i_o to_o the_o angel_n what_o young_a person_n be_v it_o that_o crow_v they_o and_o give_v they_o palm_n in_o their_o hand_n 47._o v._n so_o he_o answer_v and_o say_v unto_o i_o it_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o they_o have_v confess_v in_o the_o world_n then_o begin_v i_o great_o to_o commend_v they_o that_o stand_v so_o stiff_o for_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n now_o this_o mount_n zion_n be_v the_o glorious_a tabernacle_n which_o shall_v be_v reveal_v when_o the_o lord_n again_o come_v and_o where_o the_o raise_v saint_n and_o those_o saint_n which_o be_v change_v from_o mortal_a to_o immortal_a shall_v be_v crown_v now_o as_o to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o nathan_n bring_v to_o david_n be_v in_o the_o 2_o sam._n 7.8_o now_o therefore_o so_o shall_v thou_o say_v unto_o my_o servant_n david_n thus_o say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n i_o take_v thou_o from_o the_o sheepcote_n from_o follow_v the_o sheep_n to_o be_v ruler_n over_o my_o people_n over_o israel_n 9_o and_o i_o be_v with_o thou_o whithersoever_o thou_o wente_v and_o have_v cut_v off_o all_o thy_o enemy_n out_o of_o thy_o sight_n and_o have_v make_v thou_o a_o great_a name_n like_v unto_o the_o name_n of_o the_o great_a man_n that_o be_v in_o the_o earth_n 10._o moreover_o i_o will_v appoint_v a_o place_n for_o my_o people_n israel_n and_o will_v plant_v they_o that_o they_o may_v dwell_v in_o a_o place_n of_o their_o own_o and_o move_v no_o more_o neither_o shall_v the_o child_n of_o wickedness_n afflict_v they_o any_o more_o as_o beforetime_n in_o this_o last_o verse_n here_o be_v that_o which_o be_v very_o remarkable_a in_o it_o in_o that_o the_o lord_n say_v moreover_o i_o will_v appoint_v a_o place_n for_o my_o people_n israel_n and_o in_o that_o god_n say_v that_o they_o may_v dwell_v in_o a_o place_n of_o their_o own_o and_o move_v no_o more_o neither_o shall_v the_o child_n of_o wickedness_n afflict_v they_o now_o at_o that_o time_n be_v they_o in_o canaan_n settle_v and_o conqueror_n over_o all_o their_o enemy_n round_o about_o yet_o at_o this_o time_n the_o lord_n esteem_v it_o not_o a_o place_n of_o their_o own_o because_o for_o their_o sin_n they_o shall_v be_v remove_v thence_o but_o god_n term_v it_o a_o place_n of_o their_o own_o when_o that_o time_n be_v come_v in_o which_o they_o shall_v remove_v no_o more_o and_o as_o to_o what_o the_o prophet_n say_v concern_v solomon_n 2_o sam._n 7.13_o he_o shall_v build_v a_o house_n for_o my_o name_n and_o i_o will_v establish_v the_o throne_n of_o his_o kingdom_n for_o ever_o 14._o i_o will_v be_v his_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v my_o son_n if_o he_o commit_v iniquity_n i_o will_v chasten_v he_o with_o the_o rod_n of_o man_n and_o with_o the_o stripe_n of_o the_o child_n of_o man_n 15._o but_o my_o mercy_n shall_v not_o depart_v away_o from_o he_o as_o i_o take_v it_o from_o saul_n who_o i_o put_v away_o before_o thou_o and_o thy_o house_n and_o thy_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v establish_v for_o ever_o before_o thou_o thy_o throne_n shall_v be_v establish_v for_o ever_o this_o promise_n we_o here_o see_v that_o it_o have_v its_o reference_n to_o david_n and_o solomon_n in_o that_o they_o be_v not_o cast_v off_o upon_o their_o offend_a as_o saul_n be_v and_o so_o to_o christ_n in_o time_n to_o come_v at_o which_o time_n his_o throne_n shall_v be_v establish_v forever_o which_o ever_o be_v the_o ever_o of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v this_o be_v according_a to_o what_o the_o angel_n tell_v mary_n luke_n 1.32_o he_o shall_v be_v great_a and_o shall_v he_o call_v the_o son_n of_o the_o high_a and_o the_o lord_n god_n shall_v give_v unto_o he_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o father_n david_n 33._o and_o he_o shall_v
reign_v over_o the_o house_n of_o jacob_n for_o ever_o and_o of_o his_o kingdom_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n now_o as_o to_o what_o the_o penman_n of_o psal_n 99_o say_v in_o the_o rehearsal_n of_o the_o message_n send_v by_o nathan_n to_o david_n which_o have_v its_o special_a reference_n to_o christ_n begin_v at_o the_o 27._o v._o of_o psal_n 89._o also_o i_o will_v make_v he_o my_o first_o bear_v high_o than_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n 28._o v._n my_o mercy_n will_v i_o keep_v for_o he_o for_o evermore_o my_o covenant_n shall_v stand_v fast_o with_o he_o 29._o v._n his_o seed_n also_o will_v i_o make_v to_o endure_v for_o ever_o and_o his_o throne_n as_o the_o day_n of_o heaven_n 30._o v._n if_o his_o child_n forsake_v my_o law_n and_o not_o walk_v in_o my_o judgement_n 31._o v._n if_o they_o break_v my_o statute_n and_o keep_v not_o my_o commandment_n 32._o v._n then_o will_v i_o visit_v their_o transgression_n with_o a_o rod_n and_o their_o iniquity_n with_o stripe_n 33._o v._n nevertheless_o my_o love_a kindness_n will_v i_o not_o utter_o take_v from_o he_o nor_o suffer_v my_o faithfulness_n to_o fail_v 34._o v._n my_o covenant_n will_v i_o not_o break_v nor_o alter_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v go_v out_o of_o my_o lip_n 35._o once_o have_v i_o swear_v by_o my_o holiness_n that_o i_o will_v not_o lie_v unto_o david_n 36._o v._n his_o seed_n shall_v endure_v for_o ever_o and_o his_o throne_n as_o the_o sun_n before_o i_o this_o be_v peculiar_o mean_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o glorious_a kingdom_n and_o that_o to_o we_o and_o the_o body_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n it_o belong_v not_o in_o that_o god_n christ_n st._n peter_n and_o st._n paul_n do_v declare_v the_o contrary_a for_o st._n paul_n say_v heb._n 6.5,6_o if_o we_o wilful_o fall_v away_o after_o we_o have_v taste_v the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v the_o apostle_n say_v we_o can_v be_v renew_v again_o by_o repentance_n and_o therefore_o this_o promise_n be_v not_o make_v to_o we_o and_o also_o now_o god_n prove_v and_o try_v he_o and_o here_o in_o this_o world_n common_o god_n best_a saint_n suffer_v the_o great_a affliction_n and_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v hebrew_n 12.6_o for_o who_o the_o lord_n love_v he_o chastn_v and_o scourge_v every_o son_n who_o he_o receive_v 7._o if_o you_o endure_v chasten_v god_n deal_v with_o you_o as_o son_n for_o what_o son_n be_v he_o who_o the_o father_n chasten_v not_o 8._o but_o if_o you_o be_v without_o chastisement_n whereof_o all_o be_v partaker_n then_o be_v you_o bastard_n and_o not_o son_n and_o after_o all_o if_o we_o fall_v away_o as_o in_o heb._n 10.26_o for_o if_o we_o sin_v wilful_o after_o that_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n there_o remain_v no_o more_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n 27._o v._n but_o a_o certain_a fearful_a look_v for_o of_o judgement_n and_o fiery_a indignation_n which_o shall_v devour_v the_o adversary_n but_o when_o this_o promise_n be_v make_v annex_v to_o this_o threaten_v there_o be_v no_o affliction_n threaten_v to_o they_o that_o do_v well_o now_o israel_n at_o their_o first_o enter_v into_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n be_v upon_o their_o obedience_n promise_v prosperity_n and_o plenty_n of_o all_o thing_n as_o in_o deut._n 28._o but_o we_o by_o the_o gospel_n be_v promise_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a sorrow_n affliction_n and_o persecution_n and_o if_o we_o hold_v out_o to_o the_o end_n we_o shall_v receive_v a_o crown_n of_o life_n which_o the_o lord_n the_o righteous_a judge_n shall_v give_v at_o that_o day_n unto_o all_o they_o that_o love_v his_o appear_v 2_o tim._n 4.8_o not_o only_o to_o the_o raise_a saint_n but_o unto_o they_o that_o he_o will_v find_v so_o at_o his_o come_n for_o when_o we_o be_v put_v past_o the_o power_n of_o the_o second_o death_n and_o all_o sin_n and_o sorrow_n do_v away_o than_o we_o receive_v a_o crown_n of_o life_n and_o the_o lord_n say_v of_o they_o that_o keep_v his_o say_n john_n 5.24_o that_o they_o shall_v never_o see_v death_n and_o if_o so_o after_o sin_n and_o sorrow_n be_v go_v than_o it_o be_v we_o have_v the_o crown_n of_o life_n when_o christ_n again_o come_v to_o take_v the_o kingdom_n than_o israel_n will_v be_v so_o fix_v in_o the_o lord_n as_o they_o shall_v not_o sin_n against_o he_o and_o for_o the_o thousand_o year_n that_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v more_o eminent_o visible_a and_o satan_n bind_v up_o then_o shall_v all_o the_o family_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v bless_v in_o christ_n but_o after_o that_o time_n when_o the_o eminent_a glory_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o so_o visible_a and_o satan_n again_o loose_v then_o will_v he_o seek_v for_o the_o new_a brood_n of_o the_o young_a one_o that_o be_v leave_v of_o the_o old_a stock_n and_o who_o these_o young_a one_o be_v say_v to_o be_v i_o have_v already_o tell_v you_o be_v sell_v by_o israel_n and_o so_o scatter_v upon_o the_o earth_n and_o he_o will_v draw_v off_o as_o many_o of_o the_o gentile_n as_o he_o can_v with_o they_o with_o the_o chief_a prince_n of_o meshech_n and_o tubal_n which_o be_v of_o the_o race_n of_o japhet_n as_o in_o gen._n 10.2_o and_o in_o 1_o chr._n 1.5_o which_o will_v be_v the_o gog_n and_o magog_n speak_v of_o in_o ezek._n 38.2_o son_n of_o man_n set_v thy_o face_n against_o gog_n the_o land_n of_o magog_n the_o chief_a prince_n of_o meshech_n and_o tubal_n and_o prophesy_v again_o he_o and_o in_o rev._n 20.8_o there_o be_v gog_n and_o magog_n again_o speak_v of_o now_o after_o satan_n have_v delude_v these_o to_o their_o destruction_n than_o it_o be_v say_v zac._n 14.16_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o every_o one_o that_o be_v leave_v of_o all_o the_o nation_n which_o come_v against_o jerusalem_n shall_v even_o go_v up_o from_o year_n to_o year_n to_o worship_v the_o king_n the_o lord_n of_o host_n and_o to_o keep_v the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n now_o these_o here_o speak_v of_o that_o be_v leave_v of_o all_o the_o nation_n that_o come_v against_o jerusalem_n be_v those_o that_o come_v not_o up_o to_o fight_v against_o jerusalem_n for_o as_o many_o as_o go_v up_o to_o fight_v against_o jerusalem_n of_o all_o the_o nation_n as_o many_o as_o be_v leave_v of_o they_o will_v be_v destroy_v by_o the_o plague_n that_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o 12._o v._o of_o the_o same_o chap._n and_o after_o the_o destruction_n of_o gog_n and_o magog_n the_o devil_n be_v say_v to_o be_v cast_v into_o hell_n for_o ever_o and_o for_o ever_o which_o signify_v it_o will_v be_v a_o long_a time_n before_o the_o final_a judgement_n because_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o two_o ever_v for_o the_o next_o world_n consist_v of_o one_o ever_o now_o after_o the_o destruction_n of_o these_o forementioned_a enemy_n of_o israel_n the_o lord_n say_v in_o zach._n 14.17_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v that_o whosoever_o will_v not_o come_v up_o of_o all_o the_o family_n of_o the_o earth_n unto_o jerusalem_n to_o worship_v the_o king_n the_o lord_n of_o host_n even_o upon_o they_o shall_v be_v no_o rain_n here_o we_o see_v god_n threaten_v they_o but_o with_o a_o temporal_a punishment_n so_o when_o this_o glorious_a time_n be_v come_v that_o christ_n and_o his_o people_n have_v the_o supreme_a power_n then_o will_v this_o promise_n in_o the_o 89._o psalm_n be_v of_o force_n to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v for_o although_o israel_n will_v be_v so_o secure_v in_o the_o lord_n that_o they_o can_v sin_v against_o he_o yet_o the_o other_o promise_a elect_n will_v not_o so_o secure_o stand_v and_o here_o find_v in_o zachariah_n but_o a_o temporal_a punishment_n threaten_v after_o that_o last_o overthrow_n i_o therefore_o do_v believe_v that_o the_o word_n in_o the_o psalm_n have_v a_o reference_n to_o that_o time_n to_o come_v for_o where_o this_o chastisement_n be_v speak_v of_o in_o that_o psalm_n it_o be_v also_o say_v in_o the_o 29._o v._n that_o his_o throne_n shall_v continue_v as_o the_o day_n of_o heaven_n and_o now_o this_o particular_a throne_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o for_o he_o be_v say_v to_o sit_v now_o on_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o father_n as_o in_o heb._n 10.12,13_o but_o this_o man_n after_o he_o have_v offer_v one_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n for_o ever_o sit_v down_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n from_o henceforth_o expect_v till_o his_o enemy_n be_v make_v his_o footstool_n the_o ever_o here_o speak_v of_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o ever_o of_o this_o world_n which_o world_n be_v the_o wicked_a people_n and_o when_o the_o ever_o of_o their_o time_n be_v
nourish_v thy_o child_n o_o thou_o good_a nurse_n establish_v their_o foot_n that_o be_v pray_v for_o they_o instruct_v they_o exhort_v they_o reprove_v they_o rebuke_n and_o chastise_v they_o for_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o the_o 2_o of_o esdras_n 9.11_o they_o that_o have_v loathe_v my_o law_n while_o they_o have_v yet_o liberty_n and_o when_o as_o yet_o place_n of_o repentance_n be_v open_a unto_o they_o understand_v not_o but_o despise_v it_o v._o 12._o the_o same_o must_v know_v it_o after_o death_n by_o pain_n and_o eby_n for_o not_o chastise_v his_o son_n but_o only_o reprove_v they_o therefore_o the_o anger_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v kindle_v against_o he_o 1_o sam._n 2.30_o wherefore_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n say_v i_o say_v indeed_o that_o thy_o house_n and_o the_o house_n of_o thy_o father_n shall_v walk_v before_o i_o for_o ever_o but_o now_o the_o lord_n say_v be_v it_o far_o from_o i_o for_o they_o that_o honour_v i_o i_o will_v honour_v and_o they_o that_o despise_v i_o shall_v be_v light_o esteem_v v._o 31._o behold_v the_o day_n be_v come_v that_o i_o will_v cut_v off_o thy_o arm_n and_o the_o arm_n of_o thy_o father_n house_n that_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o old_a man_n in_o thy_o house_n here_o we_o see_v it_o be_v sin_n that_o do_v disappoint_v they_o of_o a_o promise_a blessing_n and_o also_o the_o good_a king_n josiah_n do_v forfeit_v his_o temporal_a promise_a blessing_n the_o which_o be_v that_o he_o shall_v die_v in_o peace_n but_o he_o unadvised_o go_v out_o to_o fight_v with_o the_o king_n of_o egypt_n when_o he_o be_v forewarn_v by_o the_o same_o king_n from_o the_o lord_n to_o forbear_v as_o be_v say_v in_o chron._n 34.27_o because_o thy_o heart_n be_v tender_a and_o thou_o do_v humble_v thyself_o before_o god_n when_o thou_o hear_v his_o word_n against_o this_o place_n and_o against_o the_o inhabitant_n thereof_o and_o humble_a thyself_o before_o i_o and_o do_v rend_v thy_o clothes_n and_o weep_v before_o i_o i_o have_v even_o hear_v thou_o also_o say_v the_o lord_n 28._o behold_v i_o will_v gather_v thou_o to_o thy_o father_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v gather_v to_o the_o grave_n in_o peace_n neither_o shall_v thy_o eye_n see_v all_o the_o evil_a that_o i_o will_v bring_v upon_o this_o place_n and_o upon_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o same_o now_o in_o the_o 2_o chron._n 35.20_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o go_v out_o to_o fight_v against_o the_o king_n of_o egypt_n 21._o but_o he_o send_v ambassador_n to_o he_o say_v what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v with_o thou_o thou_o king_n of_o judah_n i_o come_v not_o against_o thou_o this_o day_n but_o against_o the_o house_n wherewith_o i_o have_v war_n for_o god_n command_v i_o to_o make_v haste_n forbear_v thou_o from_o meddle_v with_o god_n who_o be_v with_o i_o that_o he_o destroy_v thou_o not_o 22._o nevertheless_o josiah_n will_v not_o turn_v his_o face_n from_o he_o but_z disguised_z himself_o that_o he_o may_v fight_v with_o he_o and_o hearken_v not_o unto_o the_o word_n of_o necho_n from_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n and_o come_v to_o fight_v in_o the_o valley_n of_o megiddo_n 23._o and_o the_o archer_n shoot_v at_o king_n josiah_n and_o the_o king_n say_v to_o his_o servant_n have_v i_o away_o for_o i_o be_o sore_o wound_v of_o which_o he_o die_v and_o also_o st._n paul_n in_o act_n 27.22_o say_v to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o ship_n and_o now_o i_o exhort_v you_o to_o be_v of_o good_a cheer_n for_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o loss_n of_o any_o man_n life_n among_o you_o but_o of_o the_o ship_n 23._o for_o there_o stand_v by_o i_o this_o night_n the_o angel_n of_o god_n who_o i_o be_o and_o who_o i_o serve_v 24._o say_v fear_v not_o paul_n thou_o must_v be_v bring_v before_o caesar_n and_z lo_o god_n have_v give_v thou_o all_o they_o that_o sail_n with_o thou_o 25._o wherefore_o sir_n be_v of_o good_a cheer_n for_o i_o believe_v god_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v even_o as_o it_o be_v tell_v i_o now_o when_o the_o ship-man_n be_v go_v to_o make_v their_o escape_n out_o of_o the_o ship_n st._n paul_n in_o the_o 31._o v._n say_v to_o the_o centurion_n and_o to_o the_o soldier_n except_o these_o abide_v in_o the_o ship_n you_o can_v be_v save_v now_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v set_v down_o for_o our_o instruction_n and_o example_n and_o to_o admonish_v we_o that_o through_o our_o own_o default_n we_o may_v miss_v of_o the_o promise_a blessing_n for_o we_o must_v take_v to_o the_o way_n and_o use_v the_o mean_n or_o else_o the_o blessing_n promise_v be_v not_o attainable_a therefore_o st._n paul_n say_v heb._n 4.1_o let_v we_o therefore_o fear_n lest_o a_o promise_n be_v leave_v we_o of_o enter_v into_o his_o rest_n any_o of_o you_o shall_v seem_v to_o come_v short_a of_o it_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v fair_a warning_n that_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v 2_o pet._n 1.10_o we_o shall_v use_v all_o diligence_n to_o make_v our_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a and_o st._n paul_n say_v rom._n 11.7_o what_o then_o israel_n have_v not_o obtain_v that_o which_o he_o seek_v for_o but_o the_o election_n have_v obtain_v it_o and_o the_o rest_n be_v blind_v wherefore_o be_v they_o blind_v because_o they_o harden_v themselves_o in_o disobedience_n unto_o god_n as_o i_o before_o show_v you_o now_o there_o be_v a_o threefold_a hardness_n of_o heart_n first_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a hardness_n or_o unbelief_n second_o there_o be_v a_o wilful_a hardness_n or_o unbelief_n that_o be_v when_o we_o wilful_o harden_v ourselves_o against_o god_n and_o his_o word_n and_o then_o it_o be_v that_o god_n give_v they_o up_o to_o a_o judicial_a hardness_n of_o heart_n and_o blindness_n of_o mind_n therefore_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o isa_n 65.2_o the_o which_o place_n be_v also_o mention_v by_o st._n paul_n in_o rom._n 10.21_o but_o to_o israel_n he_o say_v i_o have_v spread_v out_o my_o hand_n all_o the_o day_n unto_o a_o rebellious_a people_n which_o walk_v in_o a_o way_n that_o be_v not_o good_a after_o their_o own_o thought_n and_o in_o rom._n 11.11,8_o he_o say_v according_a as_o it_o be_v write_v god_n have_v give_v they_o the_o spirit_n of_o slumber_n eye_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o see_v and_o ear_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o hear_v unto_o this_o day_n that_o be_v as_o i_o before_o show_v you_o in_o isa_n 6.9_o the_o which_o judgement_n be_v pronounce_v against_o rhem_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o great_a wickedness_n the_o which_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o forego_n chap._n of_o isaiah_n to_o which_o i_o have_v already_o speak_v and_o therefore_o shall_v here_o pass_v it_o by_o but_o as_o for_o the_o other_o quotation_n that_o be_v put_v down_o in_o the_o margin_n which_o be_v isa_n 29.10_o the_o which_o be_v not_o mean_v by_o st._n paul_n because_o that_o place_n have_v its_o special_a reference_n to_o the_o christian_n by_o reason_n from_o the_o 5._o v._n downward_o it_o treat_v of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o world_n and_o israel_n enemy_n the_o which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v at_o a_o instant_n sudden_o that_o be_v when_o the_o lord_n come_v at_o which_o time_n also_o there_o will_v be_v a_o great_a stupidness_n upon_o the_o relapsed_a christian_n occasion_v by_o their_o sin_n of_o which_o st._n paul_n say_v 2_o thes_n 2.10_o because_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v 11._o and_o for_o this_o cause_n god_n send_v they_o strong_a delusion_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v a_o lie_n 12._o that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v damn_v who_o believe_v not_o the_o truth_n but_o have_v pleasure_n in_o unrighteousness_n for_o as_o i_o before_o show_v it_o be_v say_v in_o rev._n 13.2_o that_o the_o devil_n give_v the_o beast_n his_o power_n of_o who_o come_v strong_a delusion_n so_o as_o they_o believe_v lie_n beside_o all_o the_o other_o delusion_n that_o the_o devil_n have_v send_v abroad_o in_o the_o world_n the_o which_o god_n suffer_v to_o take_v with_o they_o that_o have_v no_o love_n to_o the_o truth_n but_o have_v pleasure_n in_o unrighteousness_n the_o which_o make_v sin_n exceed_v finful_a by_o which_o we_o be_v also_o show_v that_o the_o day_n of_o grace_n and_o the_o day_n of_o life_n have_v not_o one_o and_o the_o same_o period_n that_o be_v that_o the_o day_n of_o grace_n may_v be_v take_v away_o long_o before_o our_o natural_a life_n be_v end_v of_o which_o the_o apostle_n say_v heb._n 3.7_o wherefore_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v to_o day_n if_o you_o will_v hear_v his_o voice_n 8._o harden_n not_o your_o heart_n as_o in_o the_o provocation_n in_o the_o day_n of_o temptation_n in_o the_o wilderness_n 9_o when_o your_o father_n tempt_v i_o prove_v